id sid tid token lemma pos 8827 1 1 Weymouth Weymouth NNP 8827 1 2 New New NNP 8827 1 3 Testament Testament NNP 8827 1 4 in in IN 8827 1 5 Modern Modern NNP 8827 1 6 Speech Speech NNP 8827 1 7 Preface Preface NNP 8827 1 8 and and CC 8827 1 9 Introductions Introductions NNPS 8827 1 10 Third Third NNP 8827 1 11 Edition Edition NNP 8827 1 12 1913 1913 CD 8827 1 13 Public Public NNP 8827 1 14 Domain Domain NNP 8827 1 15 -- -- : 8827 1 16 Copy copy VB 8827 1 17 Freely freely RB 8827 1 18 These these DT 8827 1 19 files file NNS 8827 1 20 were be VBD 8827 1 21 produced produce VBN 8827 1 22 by by IN 8827 1 23 keying key VBG 8827 1 24 for for IN 8827 1 25 use use NN 8827 1 26 in in IN 8827 1 27 the the DT 8827 1 28 Online Online NNP 8827 1 29 Bible Bible NNP 8827 1 30 . . . 8827 2 1 Proofreading proofreading NN 8827 2 2 was be VBD 8827 2 3 performed perform VBN 8827 2 4 by by IN 8827 2 5 Earl Earl NNP 8827 2 6 Melton Melton NNP 8827 2 7 . . . 8827 3 1 The the DT 8827 3 2 printed print VBN 8827 3 3 edition edition NN 8827 3 4 used use VBD 8827 3 5 in in IN 8827 3 6 creating create VBG 8827 3 7 this this DT 8827 3 8 etext etext NN 8827 3 9 was be VBD 8827 3 10 the the DT 8827 3 11 Kregal Kregal NNP 8827 3 12 reprint reprint NN 8827 3 13 of of IN 8827 3 14 the the DT 8827 3 15 Ernest Ernest NNP 8827 3 16 Hampden Hampden NNP 8827 3 17 - - HYPH 8827 3 18 Cook Cook NNP 8827 3 19 ( ( -LRB- 8827 3 20 1912 1912 CD 8827 3 21 ) ) -RRB- 8827 3 22 Third Third NNP 8827 3 23 Edition Edition NNP 8827 3 24 , , , 8827 3 25 of of IN 8827 3 26 the the DT 8827 3 27 edition edition NN 8827 3 28 first first RB 8827 3 29 published publish VBN 8827 3 30 in in IN 8827 3 31 1909 1909 CD 8827 3 32 by by IN 8827 3 33 J. J. NNP 8827 3 34 Clarke Clarke NNP 8827 3 35 , , , 8827 3 36 London London NNP 8827 3 37 . . . 8827 4 1 Kregal Kregal NNP 8827 4 2 edition edition NN 8827 4 3 ISBN ISBN NNP 8827 4 4 0 0 CD 8827 4 5 - - HYPH 8827 4 6 8254 8254 CD 8827 4 7 - - HYPH 8827 4 8 4025 4025 CD 8827 4 9 - - SYM 8827 4 10 4 4 CD 8827 4 11 . . . 8827 5 1 Due due IN 8827 5 2 to to IN 8827 5 3 the the DT 8827 5 4 plans plan NNS 8827 5 5 to to TO 8827 5 6 add add VB 8827 5 7 the the DT 8827 5 8 Weymouth Weymouth NNP 8827 5 9 footnotes footnote NNS 8827 5 10 , , , 8827 5 11 the the DT 8827 5 12 footnote footnote NN 8827 5 13 markers marker NNS 8827 5 14 have have VBP 8827 5 15 been be VBN 8827 5 16 left leave VBN 8827 5 17 in in IN 8827 5 18 the the DT 8827 5 19 text text NN 8827 5 20 and and CC 8827 5 21 page page NN 8827 5 22 break break NN 8827 5 23 indicators indicator NNS 8827 5 24 . . . 8827 6 1 Other other JJ 8827 6 2 special special JJ 8827 6 3 markings marking NNS 8827 6 4 are be VBP 8827 6 5 words word NNS 8827 6 6 surrounded surround VBN 8827 6 7 with with IN 8827 6 8 " " `` 8827 6 9 * * NN 8827 6 10 " " '' 8827 6 11 to to TO 8827 6 12 indicate indicate VB 8827 6 13 emphasis emphasis NN 8827 6 14 , , , 8827 6 15 and and CC 8827 6 16 phrases phrase NNS 8827 6 17 surrounded surround VBN 8827 6 18 with with IN 8827 6 19 " " `` 8827 6 20 < < XX 8827 6 21 > > XX 8827 6 22 " " `` 8827 6 23 to to TO 8827 6 24 indicate indicate VB 8827 6 25 bold bold JJ 8827 6 26 OT OT NNP 8827 6 27 quotes quote NNS 8827 6 28 . . . 8827 7 1 See see VB 8827 7 2 WEYMOUTH.INT weymouth.int JJ 8827 7 3 in in IN 8827 7 4 WNTINT.ZIP wntint.zip NN 8827 7 5 for for IN 8827 7 6 the the DT 8827 7 7 introduction introduction NN 8827 7 8 to to IN 8827 7 9 the the DT 8827 7 10 text text NN 8827 7 11 , , , 8827 7 12 and and CC 8827 7 13 information information NN 8827 7 14 on on IN 8827 7 15 Weymouth Weymouth NNP 8827 7 16 's 's POS 8827 7 17 techniques technique NNS 8827 7 18 . . . 8827 8 1 The the DT 8827 8 2 most most RBS 8827 8 3 current current JJ 8827 8 4 corrected correct VBN 8827 8 5 files file NNS 8827 8 6 can can MD 8827 8 7 be be VB 8827 8 8 found find VBN 8827 8 9 on on IN 8827 8 10 : : : 8827 8 11 Bible Bible NNP 8827 8 12 Foundation Foundation NNP 8827 8 13 BBS BBS NNP 8827 8 14 602 602 CD 8827 8 15 - - HYPH 8827 8 16 789 789 CD 8827 8 17 - - HYPH 8827 8 18 7040 7040 CD 8827 8 19 ( ( -LRB- 8827 8 20 14.4 14.4 CD 8827 8 21 kbs kbs NN 8827 8 22 ) ) -RRB- 8827 8 23 If if IN 8827 8 24 any any DT 8827 8 25 errors error NNS 8827 8 26 are be VBP 8827 8 27 found find VBN 8827 8 28 , , , 8827 8 29 please please UH 8827 8 30 notify notify VB 8827 8 31 me -PRON- PRP 8827 8 32 at at IN 8827 8 33 the the DT 8827 8 34 above above JJ 8827 8 35 bbs bbs NNP 8827 8 36 , , , 8827 8 37 or or CC 8827 8 38 at at IN 8827 8 39 : : : 8827 8 40 Mark Mark NNP 8827 8 41 Fuller Fuller NNP 8827 8 42 1129 1129 CD 8827 8 43 E. E. NNP 8827 8 44 Loyola Loyola NNP 8827 8 45 Dr. Dr. NNP 8827 8 46 Tempe Tempe NNP 8827 8 47 , , , 8827 8 48 Az Az NNP 8827 8 49 . . . 8827 9 1 85282 85282 CD 8827 9 2 ( ( -LRB- 8827 9 3 602 602 CD 8827 9 4 ) ) -RRB- 8827 9 5 829 829 CD 8827 9 6 - - SYM 8827 9 7 8542 8542 CD 8827 9 8 ----------- ----------- NFP 8827 9 9 Corrections correction NNS 8827 9 10 to to IN 8827 9 11 the the DT 8827 9 12 printed print VBN 8827 9 13 page page NN 8827 9 14 --------------------- --------------------- : 8827 9 15 Introduction introduction NN 8827 9 16 says say VBZ 8827 9 17 personal personal JJ 8827 9 18 pronouns pronoun NNS 8827 9 19 referring refer VBG 8827 9 20 to to IN 8827 9 21 Jesus Jesus NNP 8827 9 22 , , , 8827 9 23 when when WRB 8827 9 24 spoken speak VBN 8827 9 25 by by IN 8827 9 26 other other JJ 8827 9 27 than than IN 8827 9 28 the the DT 8827 9 29 author author NN 8827 9 30 / / SYM 8827 9 31 narrator narrator NN 8827 9 32 , , , 8827 9 33 are be VBP 8827 9 34 capitalized capitalize VBN 8827 9 35 only only RB 8827 9 36 when when WRB 8827 9 37 they -PRON- PRP 8827 9 38 recognize recognize VBP 8827 9 39 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 9 40 deity deity NN 8827 9 41 . . . 8827 10 1 The the DT 8827 10 2 following follow VBG 8827 10 3 oversights oversight NNS 8827 10 4 in in IN 8827 10 5 the the DT 8827 10 6 third third JJ 8827 10 7 edition edition NN 8827 10 8 were be VBD 8827 10 9 corrected correct VBN 8827 10 10 in in IN 8827 10 11 subsequent subsequent JJ 8827 10 12 editions edition NNS 8827 10 13 . . . 8827 11 1 Therefore therefore RB 8827 11 2 we -PRON- PRP 8827 11 3 feel feel VBP 8827 11 4 justified justified JJ 8827 11 5 in in IN 8827 11 6 correcting correct VBG 8827 11 7 them -PRON- PRP 8827 11 8 in in IN 8827 11 9 this this DT 8827 11 10 computer computer NN 8827 11 11 version version NN 8827 11 12 . . . 8827 12 1 Mt Mt NNP 8827 12 2 22:16 22:16 CD 8827 12 3 Capitalized Capitalized NNP 8827 12 4 ' ' '' 8827 12 5 him -PRON- PRP 8827 12 6 ' ' '' 8827 12 7 . . . 8827 13 1 Same same JJ 8827 13 2 person person NN 8827 13 3 speaking speak VBG 8827 13 4 as as IN 8827 13 5 in in IN 8827 13 6 v.15 v.15 NNP 8827 13 7 . . . 8827 14 1 Mt Mt NNP 8827 14 2 27:54 27:54 CD 8827 14 3 Capitalized capitalize VBN 8827 14 4 ' ' '' 8827 14 5 he -PRON- PRP 8827 14 6 ' ' '' 8827 14 7 . . . 8827 15 1 Joh Joh NNP 8827 15 2 21:20 21:20 CD 8827 15 3 Capitalized Capitalized NNP 8827 15 4 ' ' '' 8827 15 5 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 15 6 ' ' `` 8827 15 7 Heb Heb NNP 8827 15 8 12:6 12:6 CD 8827 15 9 Capitalized capitalize VBN 8827 15 10 last last JJ 8827 15 11 ' ' `` 8827 15 12 HE he PRP 8827 15 13 ' ' '' 8827 15 14 ( ( -LRB- 8827 15 15 referring refer VBG 8827 15 16 to to IN 8827 15 17 God God NNP 8827 15 18 ) ) -RRB- 8827 15 19 . . . 8827 16 1 = = NFP 8827 16 2 = = NFP 8827 16 3 = = NFP 8827 16 4 = = SYM 8827 16 5 changes change NNS 8827 16 6 made make VBN 8827 16 7 to to IN 8827 16 8 printed print VBN 8827 16 9 page page NN 8827 16 10 . . . 8827 17 1 Lu Lu NNP 8827 17 2 11:49 11:49 CD 8827 17 3 Added add VBN 8827 17 4 closing closing NN 8827 17 5 quote quote NN 8827 17 6 at at IN 8827 17 7 end end NN 8827 17 8 of of IN 8827 17 9 verse verse NN 8827 17 10 as as IN 8827 17 11 later later JJ 8827 17 12 editions edition NNS 8827 17 13 do do VBP 8827 17 14 . . . 8827 18 1 Lu Lu NNP 8827 18 2 13:6 13:6 CD 8827 18 3 come come NN 8827 18 4 > > XX 8827 18 5 came come VBD 8827 18 6 ( ( -LRB- 8827 18 7 changed change VBN 8827 18 8 in in IN 8827 18 9 later later JJ 8827 18 10 editions edition NNS 8827 18 11 ) ) -RRB- 8827 18 12 Ro ro IN 8827 18 13 11:16 11:16 CD 8827 18 14 it -PRON- PRP 8827 18 15 > > XX 8827 18 16 if if IN 8827 18 17 ( ( -LRB- 8827 18 18 an an DT 8827 18 19 obvious obvious JJ 8827 18 20 typesetting typesetting NN 8827 18 21 error error NN 8827 18 22 corrected correct VBN 8827 18 23 in in IN 8827 18 24 later later JJ 8827 18 25 editions edition NNS 8827 18 26 ) ) -RRB- 8827 18 27 1Co 1co CD 8827 18 28 11:6 11:6 CD 8827 18 29 out out RP 8827 18 30 > > FW 8827 18 31 cut cut NN 8827 18 32 ( ( -LRB- 8827 18 33 an an DT 8827 18 34 obvious obvious JJ 8827 18 35 typesetting typesetting NN 8827 18 36 error error NN 8827 18 37 corrected correct VBN 8827 18 38 in in IN 8827 18 39 later later JJ 8827 18 40 editions edition NNS 8827 18 41 ) ) -RRB- 8827 18 42 Php Php NNP 8827 18 43 4:3 4:3 CD 8827 18 44 the the DT 8827 18 45 Word Word NNP 8827 18 46 ' ' POS 8827 18 47 book book NN 8827 18 48 ' ' '' 8827 18 49 in in IN 8827 18 50 ' ' '' 8827 18 51 book book NN 8827 18 52 of of IN 8827 18 53 Life Life NNP 8827 18 54 ' ' '' 8827 18 55 was be VBD 8827 18 56 not not RB 8827 18 57 capitalized capitalize VBN 8827 18 58 in in IN 8827 18 59 various various JJ 8827 18 60 printings printing NNS 8827 18 61 of of IN 8827 18 62 the the DT 8827 18 63 third third JJ 8827 18 64 edition edition NN 8827 18 65 , , , 8827 18 66 but but CC 8827 18 67 it -PRON- PRP 8827 18 68 was be VBD 8827 18 69 in in IN 8827 18 70 later later JJ 8827 18 71 editions edition NNS 8827 18 72 . . . 8827 19 1 So so RB 8827 19 2 we -PRON- PRP 8827 19 3 have have VBP 8827 19 4 capitalized capitalize VBN 8827 19 5 it -PRON- PRP 8827 19 6 here here RB 8827 19 7 . . . 8827 20 1 2Ti 2ti CD 8827 20 2 1:9 1:9 CD 8827 20 3 deserts desert NNS 8827 20 4 > > XX 8827 20 5 desserts dessert NNS 8827 20 6 ( ( -LRB- 8827 20 7 misspelling misspelling NN 8827 20 8 perpetuated perpetuate VBN 8827 20 9 in in IN 8827 20 10 later later JJ 8827 20 11 editions edition NNS 8827 20 12 ) ) -RRB- 8827 20 13 = = NFP 8827 20 14 = = NFP 8827 20 15 = = NFP 8827 20 16 = = NFP 8827 20 17 no no DT 8827 20 18 change change NN 8827 20 19 made make VBN 8827 20 20 : : : 8827 20 21 Eph Eph NNP 8827 20 22 6:17 6:17 NNP 8827 20 23 did do VBD 8827 20 24 not not RB 8827 20 25 capitalize capitalize VB 8827 20 26 ' ' `` 8827 20 27 word word NN 8827 20 28 ' ' '' 8827 20 29 as as IN 8827 20 30 in in IN 8827 20 31 Word Word NNP 8827 20 32 of of IN 8827 20 33 God God NNP 8827 20 34 . . . 8827 21 1 PREFACE preface VB 8827 21 2 TO to IN 8827 21 3 THE the DT 8827 21 4 FIRST FIRST NNP 8827 21 5 EDITION EDITION VBN 8827 21 6 The the DT 8827 21 7 Translation translation NN 8827 21 8 of of IN 8827 21 9 the the DT 8827 21 10 New New NNP 8827 21 11 Testament Testament NNP 8827 21 12 here here RB 8827 21 13 offered offer VBD 8827 21 14 to to IN 8827 21 15 English English NNP 8827 21 16 - - HYPH 8827 21 17 speaking speak VBG 8827 21 18 Christians Christians NNPS 8827 21 19 is be VBZ 8827 21 20 a a DT 8827 21 21 bona bona JJ 8827 21 22 fide fide JJ 8827 21 23 translation translation NN 8827 21 24 made make VBN 8827 21 25 directly directly RB 8827 21 26 from from IN 8827 21 27 the the DT 8827 21 28 Greek Greek NNP 8827 21 29 , , , 8827 21 30 and and CC 8827 21 31 is be VBZ 8827 21 32 in in IN 8827 21 33 no no DT 8827 21 34 sense sense NN 8827 21 35 a a DT 8827 21 36 revision revision NN 8827 21 37 . . . 8827 22 1 The the DT 8827 22 2 plan plan NN 8827 22 3 adopted adopt VBN 8827 22 4 has have VBZ 8827 22 5 been be VBN 8827 22 6 the the DT 8827 22 7 following follow VBG 8827 22 8 . . . 8827 23 1 1 1 LS 8827 23 2 . . . 8827 24 1 An an DT 8827 24 2 earnest earnest JJ 8827 24 3 endeavour endeavour NN 8827 24 4 has have VBZ 8827 24 5 been be VBN 8827 24 6 made make VBN 8827 24 7 ( ( -LRB- 8827 24 8 based base VBN 8827 24 9 upon upon IN 8827 24 10 more more JJR 8827 24 11 than than IN 8827 24 12 sixty sixty CD 8827 24 13 years year NNS 8827 24 14 ' ' POS 8827 24 15 study study NN 8827 24 16 of of IN 8827 24 17 both both PDT 8827 24 18 the the DT 8827 24 19 Greek Greek NNP 8827 24 20 and and CC 8827 24 21 English english JJ 8827 24 22 languages language NNS 8827 24 23 , , , 8827 24 24 besides besides IN 8827 24 25 much much JJ 8827 24 26 further further JJ 8827 24 27 familiarity familiarity NN 8827 24 28 gained gain VBN 8827 24 29 by by IN 8827 24 30 continual continual JJ 8827 24 31 teaching teaching NN 8827 24 32 ) ) -RRB- 8827 24 33 to to TO 8827 24 34 ascertain ascertain VB 8827 24 35 the the DT 8827 24 36 exact exact JJ 8827 24 37 meaning meaning NN 8827 24 38 of of IN 8827 24 39 every every DT 8827 24 40 passage passage NN 8827 24 41 not not RB 8827 24 42 only only RB 8827 24 43 by by IN 8827 24 44 the the DT 8827 24 45 light light NN 8827 24 46 that that WDT 8827 24 47 Classical Classical NNP 8827 24 48 Greek Greek NNP 8827 24 49 throws throw NNS 8827 24 50 on on IN 8827 24 51 the the DT 8827 24 52 langruage langruage NN 8827 24 53 used use VBN 8827 24 54 , , , 8827 24 55 but but CC 8827 24 56 also also RB 8827 24 57 by by IN 8827 24 58 that that DT 8827 24 59 which which WDT 8827 24 60 the the DT 8827 24 61 Septuagint Septuagint NNP 8827 24 62 and and CC 8827 24 63 the the DT 8827 24 64 Hebrew Hebrew NNP 8827 24 65 Scriptures Scriptures NNPS 8827 24 66 afford afford VBP 8827 24 67 ; ; : 8827 24 68 aid aid NN 8827 24 69 being be VBG 8827 24 70 sought seek VBN 8827 24 71 too too RB 8827 24 72 from from IN 8827 24 73 Versions Versions NNPS 8827 24 74 and and CC 8827 24 75 Commentators Commentators NNPS 8827 24 76 ancient ancient JJ 8827 24 77 and and CC 8827 24 78 modern modern JJ 8827 24 79 , , , 8827 24 80 and and CC 8827 24 81 from from IN 8827 24 82 the the DT 8827 24 83 ample ample JJ 8827 24 84 _ _ NNP 8827 24 85 et et NNP 8827 24 86 cetera cetera NN 8827 24 87 _ _ NNP 8827 24 88 of of IN 8827 24 89 _ _ NNP 8827 24 90 apparatus apparatus NNP 8827 24 91 grammaticus grammaticus NNP 8827 24 92 _ _ NNP 8827 24 93 and and CC 8827 24 94 theological theological JJ 8827 24 95 and and CC 8827 24 96 Classical classical JJ 8827 24 97 reviews review NNS 8827 24 98 and and CC 8827 24 99 magazines magazine NNS 8827 24 100 -- -- : 8827 24 101 or or CC 8827 24 102 rather rather RB 8827 24 103 , , , 8827 24 104 by by IN 8827 24 105 means mean NNS 8827 24 106 of of IN 8827 24 107 occasional occasional JJ 8827 24 108 excursions excursion NNS 8827 24 109 into into IN 8827 24 110 this this DT 8827 24 111 vast vast JJ 8827 24 112 prairie prairie NN 8827 24 113 . . . 8827 25 1 2 2 LS 8827 25 2 . . . 8827 26 1 The the DT 8827 26 2 sense sense NN 8827 26 3 thus thus RB 8827 26 4 seeming seem VBG 8827 26 5 to to TO 8827 26 6 have have VB 8827 26 7 been be VBN 8827 26 8 ascertained ascertain VBN 8827 26 9 , , , 8827 26 10 the the DT 8827 26 11 next next JJ 8827 26 12 step step NN 8827 26 13 has have VBZ 8827 26 14 been be VBN 8827 26 15 to to TO 8827 26 16 consider consider VB 8827 26 17 how how WRB 8827 26 18 it -PRON- PRP 8827 26 19 could could MD 8827 26 20 be be VB 8827 26 21 most most RBS 8827 26 22 accurately accurately RB 8827 26 23 and and CC 8827 26 24 naturally naturally RB 8827 26 25 exhibited exhibit VBN 8827 26 26 in in IN 8827 26 27 the the DT 8827 26 28 English English NNP 8827 26 29 of of IN 8827 26 30 the the DT 8827 26 31 present present JJ 8827 26 32 day day NN 8827 26 33 ; ; : 8827 26 34 in in IN 8827 26 35 other other JJ 8827 26 36 words word NNS 8827 26 37 , , , 8827 26 38 how how WRB 8827 26 39 we -PRON- PRP 8827 26 40 can can MD 8827 26 41 with with IN 8827 26 42 some some DT 8827 26 43 approach approach NN 8827 26 44 to to IN 8827 26 45 probability probability NN 8827 26 46 suppose suppose VB 8827 26 47 that that IN 8827 26 48 the the DT 8827 26 49 inspired inspire VBN 8827 26 50 writer writer NN 8827 26 51 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 26 52 would would MD 8827 26 53 have have VB 8827 26 54 expressed express VBN 8827 26 55 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 26 56 thoughts thought NNS 8827 26 57 , , , 8827 26 58 had have VBD 8827 26 59 he -PRON- PRP 8827 26 60 been be VBN 8827 26 61 writing write VBG 8827 26 62 in in IN 8827 26 63 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 26 64 age age NN 8827 26 65 and and CC 8827 26 66 country country NN 8827 26 67 . . . 8827 27 1 /1 /1 NFP 8827 27 2 3 3 CD 8827 27 3 . . . 8827 28 1 Lastly lastly RB 8827 28 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 28 3 has have VBZ 8827 28 4 been be VBN 8827 28 5 evidently evidently RB 8827 28 6 desirable desirable JJ 8827 28 7 to to TO 8827 28 8 compare compare VB 8827 28 9 the the DT 8827 28 10 results result NNS 8827 28 11 thus thus RB 8827 28 12 attained attain VBD 8827 28 13 with with IN 8827 28 14 the the DT 8827 28 15 renderings rendering NNS 8827 28 16 of of IN 8827 28 17 other other JJ 8827 28 18 scholars scholar NNS 8827 28 19 , , , 8827 28 20 especially especially RB 8827 28 21 of of IN 8827 28 22 course course NN 8827 28 23 witll witll NN 8827 28 24 the the DT 8827 28 25 Authorized authorized JJ 8827 28 26 and and CC 8827 28 27 Revised revise VBN 8827 28 28 Versions Versions NNPS 8827 28 29 . . . 8827 29 1 But but CC 8827 29 2 alas alas UH 8827 29 3 , , , 8827 29 4 the the DT 8827 29 5 great great JJ 8827 29 6 majority majority NN 8827 29 7 of of IN 8827 29 8 even even RB 8827 29 9 " " `` 8827 29 10 new new JJ 8827 29 11 translations translation NNS 8827 29 12 , , , 8827 29 13 " " '' 8827 29 14 so so RB 8827 29 15 called call VBN 8827 29 16 , , , 8827 29 17 are be VBP 8827 29 18 , , , 8827 29 19 in in IN 8827 29 20 reality reality NN 8827 29 21 , , , 8827 29 22 only only RB 8827 29 23 Tyndale Tyndale NNP 8827 29 24 's 's POS 8827 29 25 immortal immortal JJ 8827 29 26 work work NN 8827 29 27 a a DT 8827 29 28 little little RB 8827 29 29 -- -- : 8827 29 30 often often RB 8827 29 31 very very RB 8827 29 32 litLle litlle JJ 8827 29 33 -- -- : 8827 29 34 modernized modernize VBN 8827 29 35 ! ! . 8827 30 1 4 4 LS 8827 30 2 . . . 8827 31 1 But but CC 8827 31 2 in in IN 8827 31 3 the the DT 8827 31 4 endeavour endeavour NN 8827 31 5 to to TO 8827 31 6 find find VB 8827 31 7 in in IN 8827 31 8 Twentieth Twentieth NNP 8827 31 9 Century Century NNP 8827 31 10 English English NNP 8827 31 11 a a DT 8827 31 12 precise precise JJ 8827 31 13 equivalent equivalent NN 8827 31 14 for for IN 8827 31 15 a a DT 8827 31 16 Greek greek JJ 8827 31 17 word word NN 8827 31 18 , , , 8827 31 19 phrase phrase NN 8827 31 20 , , , 8827 31 21 or or CC 8827 31 22 sentence sentence NN 8827 31 23 there there EX 8827 31 24 are be VBP 8827 31 25 two two CD 8827 31 26 dangers danger NNS 8827 31 27 to to TO 8827 31 28 be be VB 8827 31 29 guarded guard VBN 8827 31 30 against against IN 8827 31 31 . . . 8827 32 1 There there EX 8827 32 2 are be VBP 8827 32 3 a a DT 8827 32 4 Scylla Scylla NNP 8827 32 5 and and CC 8827 32 6 a a DT 8827 32 7 Charybdis Charybdis NNP 8827 32 8 . . . 8827 33 1 On on IN 8827 33 2 the the DT 8827 33 3 one one CD 8827 33 4 hand hand NN 8827 33 5 there there EX 8827 33 6 is be VBZ 8827 33 7 the the DT 8827 33 8 English English NNP 8827 33 9 of of IN 8827 33 10 Society Society NNP 8827 33 11 , , , 8827 33 12 on on IN 8827 33 13 the the DT 8827 33 14 other other JJ 8827 33 15 hand hand NN 8827 33 16 that that DT 8827 33 17 of of IN 8827 33 18 the the DT 8827 33 19 utterly utterly RB 8827 33 20 uneducated uneducated JJ 8827 33 21 , , , 8827 33 22 each each DT 8827 33 23 of of IN 8827 33 24 these these DT 8827 33 25 _ _ NNP 8827 33 26 patois patois NN 8827 33 27 _ _ NNP 8827 33 28 having have VBG 8827 33 29 also also RB 8827 33 30 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 33 31 own own JJ 8827 33 32 special special JJ 8827 33 33 , , , 8827 33 34 though though IN 8827 33 35 expressive expressive JJ 8827 33 36 , , , 8827 33 37 borderland borderland VB 8827 33 38 which which WDT 8827 33 39 we -PRON- PRP 8827 33 40 name name VBP 8827 33 41 ' ' `` 8827 33 42 slang slang NNP 8827 33 43 . . . 8827 33 44 ' ' '' 8827 34 1 But but CC 8827 34 2 all all PDT 8827 34 3 these these DT 8827 34 4 salient salient NN 8827 34 5 angles angle NNS 8827 34 6 ( ( -LRB- 8827 34 7 as as IN 8827 34 8 a a DT 8827 34 9 professor professor NN 8827 34 10 of of IN 8827 34 11 fortification fortification NN 8827 34 12 might may MD 8827 34 13 say say VB 8827 34 14 ) ) -RRB- 8827 34 15 of of IN 8827 34 16 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 34 17 language language NN 8827 34 18 are be VBP 8827 34 19 forbidden forbid VBN 8827 34 20 ground ground NN 8827 34 21 to to IN 8827 34 22 the the DT 8827 34 23 reverent reverent JJ 8827 34 24 translator translator NN 8827 34 25 of of IN 8827 34 26 Holy Holy NNP 8827 34 27 Scripture Scripture NNP 8827 34 28 . . . 8827 35 1 5 5 CD 8827 35 2 . . . 8827 36 1 But but CC 8827 36 2 again again RB 8827 36 3 , , , 8827 36 4 a a DT 8827 36 5 _ _ NNP 8827 36 6 modern modern JJ 8827 36 7 _ _ NNP 8827 36 8 translation translation NN 8827 36 9 -- -- : 8827 36 10 does do VBZ 8827 36 11 this this DT 8827 36 12 imply imply VB 8827 36 13 that that IN 8827 36 14 no no DT 8827 36 15 words word NNS 8827 36 16 or or CC 8827 36 17 phrases phrase NNS 8827 36 18 in in IN 8827 36 19 any any DT 8827 36 20 degree degree NN 8827 36 21 antiquated antiquate VBN 8827 36 22 are be VBP 8827 36 23 to to TO 8827 36 24 be be VB 8827 36 25 admitted admit VBN 8827 36 26 ? ? . 8827 37 1 Not not RB 8827 37 2 so so RB 8827 37 3 , , , 8827 37 4 for for IN 8827 37 5 great great JJ 8827 37 6 numbers number NNS 8827 37 7 of of IN 8827 37 8 such such JJ 8827 37 9 words word NNS 8827 37 10 and and CC 8827 37 11 phrases phrase NNS 8827 37 12 are be VBP 8827 37 13 still still RB 8827 37 14 in in IN 8827 37 15 constant constant JJ 8827 37 16 use use NN 8827 37 17 . . . 8827 38 1 To to TO 8827 38 2 be be VB 8827 38 3 antiquated antiquated JJ 8827 38 4 is be VBZ 8827 38 5 not not RB 8827 38 6 the the DT 8827 38 7 same same JJ 8827 38 8 thing thing NN 8827 38 9 as as IN 8827 38 10 to to TO 8827 38 11 be be VB 8827 38 12 obsolete obsolete JJ 8827 38 13 or or CC 8827 38 14 even even RB 8827 38 15 obsolescent obsolescent JJ 8827 38 16 , , , 8827 38 17 and and CC 8827 38 18 without without IN 8827 38 19 at at IN 8827 38 20 least least JJS 8827 38 21 a a DT 8827 38 22 tinge tinge NN 8827 38 23 of of IN 8827 38 24 antiquity antiquity NN 8827 38 25 it -PRON- PRP 8827 38 26 is be VBZ 8827 38 27 scarcely scarcely RB 8827 38 28 possible possible JJ 8827 38 29 that that IN 8827 38 30 there there EX 8827 38 31 should should MD 8827 38 32 be be VB 8827 38 33 that that DT 8827 38 34 dignity dignity NN 8827 38 35 of of IN 8827 38 36 style style NN 8827 38 37 that that WDT 8827 38 38 befits befit VBZ 8827 38 39 the the DT 8827 38 40 sacred sacred JJ 8827 38 41 themes theme NNS 8827 38 42 with with IN 8827 38 43 which which WDT 8827 38 44 the the DT 8827 38 45 Evangelists Evangelists NNPS 8827 38 46 and and CC 8827 38 47 Apostles Apostles NNP 8827 38 48 deal deal VBP 8827 38 49 . . . 8827 39 1 6 6 CD 8827 39 2 . . . 8827 40 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 40 2 is be VBZ 8827 40 3 plain plain JJ 8827 40 4 that that IN 8827 40 5 this this DT 8827 40 6 attempt attempt NN 8827 40 7 to to TO 8827 40 8 bring bring VB 8827 40 9 out out RP 8827 40 10 the the DT 8827 40 11 sense sense NN 8827 40 12 of of IN 8827 40 13 the the DT 8827 40 14 Sacred Sacred NNP 8827 40 15 Writings Writings NNPS 8827 40 16 naturally naturally RB 8827 40 17 as as RB 8827 40 18 well well RB 8827 40 19 as as IN 8827 40 20 accurately accurately RB 8827 40 21 in in IN 8827 40 22 present present JJ 8827 40 23 - - HYPH 8827 40 24 day day NN 8827 40 25 English English NNP 8827 40 26 does do VBZ 8827 40 27 not not RB 8827 40 28 permit permit VB 8827 40 29 , , , 8827 40 30 except except IN 8827 40 31 to to IN 8827 40 32 a a DT 8827 40 33 limited limited JJ 8827 40 34 extent extent NN 8827 40 35 , , , 8827 40 36 the the DT 8827 40 37 method method NN 8827 40 38 of of IN 8827 40 39 literal literal JJ 8827 40 40 rendering rendering NN 8827 40 41 -- -- : 8827 40 42 the the DT 8827 40 43 _ _ NNP 8827 40 44 verbo verbo NN 8827 40 45 verbum verbum NN 8827 40 46 reddere reddere NNP 8827 40 47 _ _ NNP 8827 40 48 at at IN 8827 40 49 which which WDT 8827 40 50 Horace Horace NNP 8827 40 51 shrugs shrug VBZ 8827 40 52 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 40 53 shoulders shoulder NNS 8827 40 54 . . . 8827 41 1 Dr. Dr. NNP 8827 41 2 Welldon Welldon NNP 8827 41 3 , , , 8827 41 4 recently recently RB 8827 41 5 Bishop Bishop NNP 8827 41 6 of of IN 8827 41 7 Calcutta Calcutta NNP 8827 41 8 , , , 8827 41 9 in in IN 8827 41 10 the the DT 8827 41 11 Preface Preface NNP 8827 41 12 ( ( -LRB- 8827 41 13 p. p. NN 8827 41 14 vii vii NN 8827 41 15 ) ) -RRB- 8827 41 16 to to IN 8827 41 17 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 41 18 masterly masterly JJ 8827 41 19 translation translation NN 8827 41 20 of of IN 8827 41 21 the the DT 8827 41 22 _ _ NNP 8827 41 23 Nicomachean Nicomachean NNP 8827 41 24 Ethics Ethics NNP 8827 41 25 _ _ NNP 8827 41 26 of of IN 8827 41 27 Aristotle Aristotle NNP 8827 41 28 , , , 8827 41 29 writes write VBZ 8827 41 30 , , , 8827 41 31 " " `` 8827 41 32 I -PRON- PRP 8827 41 33 have have VBP 8827 41 34 deliberately deliberately RB 8827 41 35 rejected reject VBN 8827 41 36 the the DT 8827 41 37 principle principle NN 8827 41 38 of of IN 8827 41 39 trying try VBG 8827 41 40 to to TO 8827 41 41 translate translate VB 8827 41 42 the the DT 8827 41 43 same same JJ 8827 41 44 Greek greek JJ 8827 41 45 word word NN 8827 41 46 by by IN 8827 41 47 the the DT 8827 41 48 same same JJ 8827 41 49 word word NN 8827 41 50 in in IN 8827 41 51 English English NNP 8827 41 52 , , , 8827 41 53 and and CC 8827 41 54 where where WRB 8827 41 55 circumstances circumstance NNS 8827 41 56 seemed seem VBD 8827 41 57 to to TO 8827 41 58 call call VB 8827 41 59 for for IN 8827 41 60 it -PRON- PRP 8827 41 61 I -PRON- PRP 8827 41 62 have have VBP 8827 41 63 sometimes sometimes RB 8827 41 64 used use VBN 8827 41 65 two two CD 8827 41 66 English english JJ 8827 41 67 words word NNS 8827 41 68 to to TO 8827 41 69 represent represent VB 8827 41 70 one one CD 8827 41 71 word word NN 8827 41 72 of of IN 8827 41 73 the the DT 8827 41 74 Greek;"--and Greek;"--and NNS 8827 41 75 he -PRON- PRP 8827 41 76 is be VBZ 8827 41 77 perfectly perfectly RB 8827 41 78 right right JJ 8827 41 79 . . . 8827 42 1 With with IN 8827 42 2 a a DT 8827 42 3 slavish slavish JJ 8827 42 4 literality literality NN 8827 42 5 delicate delicate JJ 8827 42 6 shades shade NNS 8827 42 7 of of IN 8827 42 8 meaning meaning NN 8827 42 9 can can MD 8827 42 10 not not RB 8827 42 11 be be VB 8827 42 12 reproduced reproduce VBN 8827 42 13 , , , 8827 42 14 nor nor CC 8827 42 15 allowance allowance NN 8827 42 16 be be VB 8827 42 17 made make VBN 8827 42 18 for for IN 8827 42 19 the the DT 8827 42 20 influence influence NN 8827 42 21 of of IN 8827 42 22 interwoven interwoven JJ 8827 42 23 thought thought NN 8827 42 24 , , , 8827 42 25 or or CC 8827 42 26 of of IN 8827 42 27 the the DT 8827 42 28 writer writer NN 8827 42 29 's 's POS 8827 42 30 ever ever RB 8827 42 31 shifting shift VBG 8827 42 32 -- -- : 8827 42 33 not not RB 8827 42 34 to to TO 8827 42 35 say say VB 8827 42 36 changing change VBG 8827 42 37 -- -- : 8827 42 38 point point NN 8827 42 39 of of IN 8827 42 40 view view NN 8827 42 41 . . . 8827 43 1 An an DT 8827 43 2 utterly utterly RB 8827 43 3 ignorant ignorant JJ 8827 43 4 or or CC 8827 43 5 utterly utterly RB 8827 43 6 lazy lazy JJ 8827 43 7 man man NN 8827 43 8 , , , 8827 43 9 if if IN 8827 43 10 possessed possess VBN 8827 43 11 of of IN 8827 43 12 a a DT 8827 43 13 little little JJ 8827 43 14 ingenuity ingenuity NN 8827 43 15 , , , 8827 43 16 can can MD 8827 43 17 with with IN 8827 43 18 the the DT 8827 43 19 help help NN 8827 43 20 of of IN 8827 43 21 a a DT 8827 43 22 dictionary dictionary NN 8827 43 23 and and CC 8827 43 24 grammar grammar VBD 8827 43 25 give give VB 8827 43 26 a a DT 8827 43 27 word word NN 8827 43 28 - - HYPH 8827 43 29 for for IN 8827 43 30 - - HYPH 8827 43 31 word word NN 8827 43 32 rendering rendering NN 8827 43 33 , , , 8827 43 34 whether whether IN 8827 43 35 intelligible intelligible JJ 8827 43 36 or or CC 8827 43 37 not not RB 8827 43 38 , , , 8827 43 39 and and CC 8827 43 40 print print VB 8827 43 41 ' ' `` 8827 43 42 Translation translation NN 8827 43 43 ' ' '' 8827 43 44 on on IN 8827 43 45 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 43 46 title title NN 8827 43 47 - - HYPH 8827 43 48 page page NN 8827 43 49 . . . 8827 44 1 On on IN 8827 44 2 the the DT 8827 44 3 other other JJ 8827 44 4 hand hand NN 8827 44 5 it -PRON- PRP 8827 44 6 is be VBZ 8827 44 7 a a DT 8827 44 8 melancholy melancholy JJ 8827 44 9 spectacle spectacle NN 8827 44 10 to to TO 8827 44 11 see see VB 8827 44 12 men man NNS 8827 44 13 of of IN 8827 44 14 high high JJ 8827 44 15 ability ability NN 8827 44 16 and and CC 8827 44 17 undoubted undoubted JJ 8827 44 18 scholarship scholarship NN 8827 44 19 toil toil NN 8827 44 20 and and CC 8827 44 21 struggle struggle NN 8827 44 22 at at IN 8827 44 23 translation translation NN 8827 44 24 under under IN 8827 44 25 a a DT 8827 44 26 needless needless JJ 8827 44 27 restriction restriction NN 8827 44 28 to to IN 8827 44 29 literality literality NN 8827 44 30 , , , 8827 44 31 as as IN 8827 44 32 in in IN 8827 44 33 intellectual intellectual JJ 8827 44 34 handcuffs handcuff NNS 8827 44 35 and and CC 8827 44 36 fetters fetter NNS 8827 44 37 , , , 8827 44 38 when when WRB 8827 44 39 they -PRON- PRP 8827 44 40 might may MD 8827 44 41 with with IN 8827 44 42 advantage advantage NN 8827 44 43 snap snap VBP 8827 44 44 the the DT 8827 44 45 bonds bond NNS 8827 44 46 and and CC 8827 44 47 fling fle VBG 8827 44 48 them -PRON- PRP 8827 44 49 away away RB 8827 44 50 , , , 8827 44 51 as as IN 8827 44 52 Dr. Dr. NNP 8827 44 53 Welldon Welldon NNP 8827 44 54 has have VBZ 8827 44 55 done do VBN 8827 44 56 : : : 8827 44 57 more more JJR 8827 44 58 melancholy melancholy NNP 8827 44 59 still still RB 8827 44 60 , , , 8827 44 61 if if IN 8827 44 62 they -PRON- PRP 8827 44 63 are be VBP 8827 44 64 at at IN 8827 44 65 the the DT 8827 44 66 same same JJ 8827 44 67 time time NN 8827 44 68 racking rack VBG 8827 44 69 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 44 70 brains brain NNS 8827 44 71 to to TO 8827 44 72 exhibit exhibit VB 8827 44 73 the the DT 8827 44 74 result result NN 8827 44 75 of of IN 8827 44 76 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 44 77 labours labour NNS 8827 44 78 --- --- : 8827 44 79 a a DT 8827 44 80 splendid splendid JJ 8827 44 81 but but CC 8827 44 82 idle idle JJ 8827 44 83 philological philological JJ 8827 44 84 _ _ NNP 8827 44 85 tour tour NN 8827 44 86 de de FW 8827 44 87 force force NN 8827 44 88 _ _ NNP 8827 44 89 --in --in : 8827 44 90 what what WP 8827 44 91 was be VBD 8827 44 92 English English NNP 8827 44 93 nearly nearly RB 8827 44 94 300 300 CD 8827 44 95 years year NNS 8827 44 96 before before RB 8827 44 97 . . . 8827 45 1 7 7 LS 8827 45 2 . . . 8827 46 1 Obviously obviously RB 8827 46 2 any any DT 8827 46 3 literal literal JJ 8827 46 4 translation translation NN 8827 46 5 can can MD 8827 46 6 not not RB 8827 46 7 but but CC 8827 46 8 carry carry VB 8827 46 9 idioms idiom NNS 8827 46 10 of of IN 8827 46 11 the the DT 8827 46 12 earlier early JJR 8827 46 13 language language NN 8827 46 14 into into IN 8827 46 15 the the DT 8827 46 16 later later JJ 8827 46 17 , , , 8827 46 18 where where WRB 8827 46 19 they -PRON- PRP 8827 46 20 will will MD 8827 46 21 very very RB 8827 46 22 probably probably RB 8827 46 23 not not RB 8827 46 24 be be VB 8827 46 25 understood understand VBN 8827 46 26 ; ; : 8827 46 27 /2 /2 . 8827 46 28 and and CC 8827 46 29 more more RBR 8827 46 30 serious serious JJ 8827 46 31 still still RB 8827 46 32 is be VBZ 8827 46 33 the the DT 8827 46 34 evil evil NN 8827 46 35 when when WRB 8827 46 36 , , , 8827 46 37 as as IN 8827 46 38 in in IN 8827 46 39 the the DT 8827 46 40 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 46 41 Greek Greek NNP 8827 46 42 of of IN 8827 46 43 the the DT 8827 46 44 N N NNP 8827 46 45 T T NNP 8827 46 46 , , , 8827 46 47 the the DT 8827 46 48 earlier early JJR 8827 46 49 language language NN 8827 46 50 of of IN 8827 46 51 the the DT 8827 46 52 two two CD 8827 46 53 is be VBZ 8827 46 54 itself -PRON- PRP 8827 46 55 composite composite JJ 8827 46 56 and and CC 8827 46 57 abounds abound VBZ 8827 46 58 in in IN 8827 46 59 forms form NNS 8827 46 60 of of IN 8827 46 61 speech speech NN 8827 46 62 that that WDT 8827 46 63 belong belong VBP 8827 46 64 to to IN 8827 46 65 one one CD 8827 46 66 earlier early RBR 8827 46 67 still still RB 8827 46 68 . . . 8827 47 1 For for IN 8827 47 2 the the DT 8827 47 3 N.T. N.T. NNP 8827 48 1 Greek Greek NNP 8827 48 2 , , , 8827 48 3 even even RB 8827 48 4 in in IN 8827 48 5 the the DT 8827 48 6 writings writing NNS 8827 48 7 of of IN 8827 48 8 Luke Luke NNP 8827 48 9 , , , 8827 48 10 contains contain VBZ 8827 48 11 a a DT 8827 48 12 large large JJ 8827 48 13 number number NN 8827 48 14 of of IN 8827 48 15 Hebrew hebrew JJ 8827 48 16 idioms idiom NNS 8827 48 17 ; ; : 8827 48 18 and and CC 8827 48 19 a a DT 8827 48 20 literal literal JJ 8827 48 21 rendering rendering NN 8827 48 22 into into IN 8827 48 23 English English NNP 8827 48 24 can can MD 8827 48 25 not not RB 8827 48 26 but but CC 8827 48 27 partially partially RB 8827 48 28 veil veil RB 8827 48 29 , , , 8827 48 30 and and CC 8827 48 31 in in IN 8827 48 32 some some DT 8827 48 33 degree degree NN 8827 48 34 distort distort NN 8827 48 35 , , , 8827 48 36 the the DT 8827 48 37 true true JJ 8827 48 38 sense sense NN 8827 48 39 , , , 8827 48 40 even even RB 8827 48 41 if if IN 8827 48 42 it -PRON- PRP 8827 48 43 does do VBZ 8827 48 44 not not RB 8827 48 45 totally totally RB 8827 48 46 obscure obscure VB 8827 48 47 it -PRON- PRP 8827 48 48 ( ( -LRB- 8827 48 49 and and CC 8827 48 50 that that IN 8827 48 51 too too RB 8827 48 52 where where WRB 8827 48 53 _ _ NNP 8827 48 54 perfect perfect JJ 8827 48 55 _ _ NNP 8827 48 56 clearness clearness NN 8827 48 57 should should MD 8827 48 58 be be VB 8827 48 59 attained attain VBN 8827 48 60 , , , 8827 48 61 if if IN 8827 48 62 possible possible JJ 8827 48 63 ) ) -RRB- 8827 48 64 , , , 8827 48 65 by by IN 8827 48 66 this this DT 8827 48 67 admixture admixture NN 8827 48 68 of of IN 8827 48 69 Hebrew Hebrew NNP 8827 48 70 as as RB 8827 48 71 well well RB 8827 48 72 as as IN 8827 48 73 Greek greek JJ 8827 48 74 forms form NNS 8827 48 75 of of IN 8827 48 76 expression expression NN 8827 48 77 . . . 8827 49 1 8 8 LS 8827 49 2 . . . 8827 50 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 50 2 follows follow VBZ 8827 50 3 that that IN 8827 50 4 the the DT 8827 50 5 reader reader NN 8827 50 6 who who WP 8827 50 7 is be VBZ 8827 50 8 bent bent JJ 8827 50 9 upon upon IN 8827 50 10 getting get VBG 8827 50 11 a a DT 8827 50 12 literal literal JJ 8827 50 13 rendering rendering NN 8827 50 14 , , , 8827 50 15 such such JJ 8827 50 16 as as IN 8827 50 17 he -PRON- PRP 8827 50 18 can can MD 8827 50 19 commonly commonly RB 8827 50 20 find find VB 8827 50 21 in in IN 8827 50 22 the the DT 8827 50 23 R.V. R.V. NNP 8827 51 1 or or CC 8827 51 2 ( ( -LRB- 8827 51 3 often often RB 8827 51 4 a a DT 8827 51 5 better well JJR 8827 51 6 one one NN 8827 51 7 ) ) -RRB- 8827 51 8 in in IN 8827 51 9 Darby Darby NNP 8827 51 10 's 's POS 8827 51 11 _ _ NNP 8827 51 12 New New NNP 8827 51 13 Testament Testament NNP 8827 51 14 _ _ NNP 8827 51 15 , , , 8827 51 16 should should MD 8827 51 17 always always RB 8827 51 18 be be VB 8827 51 19 on on IN 8827 51 20 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 51 21 guard guard NN 8827 51 22 against against IN 8827 51 23 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 51 24 strong strong JJ 8827 51 25 tendency tendency NN 8827 51 26 to to TO 8827 51 27 mislead mislead VB 8827 51 28 . . . 8827 52 1 9 9 CD 8827 52 2 . . . 8827 53 1 One one CD 8827 53 2 point point NN 8827 53 3 however however RB 8827 53 4 can can MD 8827 53 5 hardly hardly RB 8827 53 6 be be VB 8827 53 7 too too RB 8827 53 8 emphatically emphatically RB 8827 53 9 stated state VBN 8827 53 10 . . . 8827 54 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 54 2 is be VBZ 8827 54 3 not not RB 8827 54 4 the the DT 8827 54 5 present present JJ 8827 54 6 Translator translator NN 8827 54 7 's 's POS 8827 54 8 ambition ambition NN 8827 54 9 to to TO 8827 54 10 supplant supplant VB 8827 54 11 the the DT 8827 54 12 Versions version NNS 8827 54 13 already already RB 8827 54 14 in in IN 8827 54 15 general general JJ 8827 54 16 use use NN 8827 54 17 , , , 8827 54 18 to to TO 8827 54 19 which which WDT 8827 54 20 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 54 21 intrinsic intrinsic JJ 8827 54 22 merit merit NN 8827 54 23 or or CC 8827 54 24 long long JJ 8827 54 25 familiarity familiarity NN 8827 54 26 or or CC 8827 54 27 both both DT 8827 54 28 have have VBP 8827 54 29 caused cause VBN 8827 54 30 all all DT 8827 54 31 Christian christian JJ 8827 54 32 minds mind NNS 8827 54 33 so so RB 8827 54 34 lovingly lovingly RB 8827 54 35 to to TO 8827 54 36 cling cling VB 8827 54 37 . . . 8827 55 1 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 55 2 desire desire NN 8827 55 3 has have VBZ 8827 55 4 rather rather RB 8827 55 5 been be VBN 8827 55 6 to to TO 8827 55 7 furnish furnish VB 8827 55 8 a a DT 8827 55 9 succinct succinct JJ 8827 55 10 and and CC 8827 55 11 compressed compress VBD 8827 55 12 running running NN 8827 55 13 commentary commentary NN 8827 55 14 ( ( -LRB- 8827 55 15 not not RB 8827 55 16 doctrinal doctrinal JJ 8827 55 17 ) ) -RRB- 8827 55 18 to to TO 8827 55 19 be be VB 8827 55 20 used use VBN 8827 55 21 sidc sidc NN 8827 55 22 by by IN 8827 55 23 side side NN 8827 55 24 with with IN 8827 55 25 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 55 26 elder elder JJ 8827 55 27 compeers compeer NNS 8827 55 28 . . . 8827 56 1 And and CC 8827 56 2 yet yet RB 8827 56 3 there there EX 8827 56 4 has have VBZ 8827 56 5 been be VBN 8827 56 6 something something NN 8827 56 7 of of IN 8827 56 8 a a DT 8827 56 9 remoter remoter NN 8827 56 10 hope hope NN 8827 56 11 . . . 8827 57 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 57 2 can can MD 8827 57 3 scarcely scarcely RB 8827 57 4 be be VB 8827 57 5 doubted doubt VBN 8827 57 6 that that IN 8827 57 7 some some DT 8827 57 8 day day NN 8827 57 9 the the DT 8827 57 10 attempt attempt NN 8827 57 11 will will MD 8827 57 12 be be VB 8827 57 13 renewed renew VBN 8827 57 14 to to TO 8827 57 15 produce produce VB 8827 57 16 a a DT 8827 57 17 satisfactory satisfactory JJ 8827 57 18 English English NNP 8827 57 19 Bible Bible NNP 8827 57 20 -- -- : 8827 57 21 one one CD 8827 57 22 in in IN 8827 57 23 some some DT 8827 57 24 respects respect NNS 8827 57 25 perhaps perhaps RB 8827 57 26 ( ( -LRB- 8827 57 27 but but CC 8827 57 28 assuredly assuredly RB 8827 57 29 with with IN 8827 57 30 great great JJ 8827 57 31 and and CC 8827 57 32 important important JJ 8827 57 33 deviations deviation NNS 8827 57 34 ) ) -RRB- 8827 57 35 on on IN 8827 57 36 the the DT 8827 57 37 lines line NNS 8827 57 38 of of IN 8827 57 39 the the DT 8827 57 40 Revision Revision NNP 8827 57 41 of of IN 8827 57 42 1881 1881 CD 8827 57 43 , , , 8827 57 44 or or CC 8827 57 45 even even RB 8827 57 46 altogether altogether RB 8827 57 47 to to TO 8827 57 48 supersede supersede VB 8827 57 49 both both PDT 8827 57 50 the the DT 8827 57 51 A.V. A.V. NNP 8827 58 1 and and CC 8827 58 2 the the DT 8827 58 3 R.V. R.V. NNP 8827 59 1 ; ; : 8827 59 2 and and CC 8827 59 3 it -PRON- PRP 8827 59 4 may may MD 8827 59 5 be be VB 8827 59 6 that that IN 8827 59 7 the the DT 8827 59 8 Translation Translation NNP 8827 59 9 here here RB 8827 59 10 offered offer VBD 8827 59 11 will will MD 8827 59 12 contribute contribute VB 8827 59 13 some some DT 8827 59 14 materials material NNS 8827 59 15 that that WDT 8827 59 16 may may MD 8827 59 17 be be VB 8827 59 18 built build VBN 8827 59 19 into into IN 8827 59 20 that that DT 8827 59 21 far far JJ 8827 59 22 grander grander NN 8827 59 23 edifice edifice NN 8827 59 24 . . . 8827 60 1 10 10 CD 8827 60 2 . . . 8827 61 1 THE the DT 8827 61 2 GREEK GREEK NNP 8827 61 3 TEXT TEXT NNP 8827 61 4 here here RB 8827 61 5 followed follow VBD 8827 61 6 is be VBZ 8827 61 7 that that IN 8827 61 8 given give VBN 8827 61 9 in in IN 8827 61 10 the the DT 8827 61 11 Translator translator NN 8827 61 12 's 's POS 8827 61 13 _ _ NNP 8827 61 14 Resultant Resultant NNP 8827 61 15 Greek Greek NNP 8827 61 16 Testament Testament NNP 8827 61 17 _ _ NNP 8827 61 18 . . . 8827 62 1 11 11 CD 8827 62 2 . . . 8827 63 1 Of of IN 8827 63 2 the the DT 8827 63 3 VARIOUS VARIOUS NNP 8827 63 4 READINGS reading NNS 8827 63 5 only only RB 8827 63 6 those those DT 8827 63 7 are be VBP 8827 63 8 here here RB 8827 63 9 given give VBN 8827 63 10 which which WDT 8827 63 11 seem seem VBP 8827 63 12 the the DT 8827 63 13 most most RBS 8827 63 14 important important JJ 8827 63 15 , , , 8827 63 16 and and CC 8827 63 17 which which WDT 8827 63 18 affect affect VBP 8827 63 19 the the DT 8827 63 20 rendering rendering NN 8827 63 21 into into IN 8827 63 22 English English NNP 8827 63 23 . . . 8827 64 1 They -PRON- PRP 8827 64 2 are be VBP 8827 64 3 in in IN 8827 64 4 the the DT 8827 64 5 footnotes footnote NNS 8827 64 6 , , , 8827 64 7 with with IN 8827 64 8 V.L. V.L. NNP 8827 65 1 ( ( -LRB- 8827 65 2 _ _ NNP 8827 65 3 varia varia NNP 8827 65 4 lectio lectio NNP 8827 65 5 _ _ NNP 8827 65 6 ) ) -RRB- 8827 65 7 prefixed prefix VBN 8827 65 8 . . . 8827 66 1 As as IN 8827 66 2 to to IN 8827 66 3 the the DT 8827 66 4 chief chief JJ 8827 66 5 modern modern JJ 8827 66 6 critical critical JJ 8827 66 7 editions edition NNS 8827 66 8 full full JJ 8827 66 9 details detail NNS 8827 66 10 will will MD 8827 66 11 be be VB 8827 66 12 found find VBN 8827 66 13 in in IN 8827 66 14 the the DT 8827 66 15 _ _ NNP 8827 66 16 Resultant Resultant NNP 8827 66 17 Greek Greek NNP 8827 66 18 Testament Testament NNP 8827 66 19 _ _ NNP 8827 66 20 , , , 8827 66 21 while while IN 8827 66 22 for for IN 8827 66 23 the the DT 8827 66 24 original original JJ 8827 66 25 authorities authority NNS 8827 66 26 -- -- : 8827 66 27 MSS MSS NNP 8827 66 28 . . . 8827 66 29 , , , 8827 66 30 Versions version NNS 8827 66 31 , , , 8827 66 32 Patristic patristic JJ 8827 66 33 quotations quotation NNS 8827 66 34 -- -- : 8827 66 35 the the DT 8827 66 36 reader reader NN 8827 66 37 must must MD 8827 66 38 of of IN 8827 66 39 necessity necessity NN 8827 66 40 consult consult VB 8827 66 41 the the DT 8827 66 42 great great JJ 8827 66 43 works work NNS 8827 66 44 of of IN 8827 66 45 Lachmann Lachmann NNP 8827 66 46 , , , 8827 66 47 Tregelles Tregelles NNPS 8827 66 48 , , , 8827 66 49 Tischendorf Tischendorf NNP 8827 66 50 , , , 8827 66 51 and and CC 8827 66 52 others other NNS 8827 66 53 , , , 8827 66 54 or or CC 8827 66 55 the the DT 8827 66 56 numerous numerous JJ 8827 66 57 monographs monographs NN 8827 66 58 on on IN 8827 66 59 separate separate JJ 8827 66 60 Books book NNS 8827 66 61 . . . 8827 67 1 /3 /3 . 8827 67 2 In in IN 8827 67 3 the the DT 8827 67 4 margin margin NN 8827 67 5 of of IN 8827 67 6 the the DT 8827 67 7 R.V. R.V. NNP 8827 68 1 a a DT 8827 68 2 distinction distinction NN 8827 68 3 is be VBZ 8827 68 4 made make VBN 8827 68 5 between between IN 8827 68 6 readings reading NNS 8827 68 7 supported support VBN 8827 68 8 by by IN 8827 68 9 " " `` 8827 68 10 a a DT 8827 68 11 few few JJ 8827 68 12 ancient ancient JJ 8827 68 13 authorities authority NNS 8827 68 14 , , , 8827 68 15 " " '' 8827 68 16 " " `` 8827 68 17 some some DT 8827 68 18 ancient ancient JJ 8827 68 19 authorities authority NNS 8827 68 20 , , , 8827 68 21 " " '' 8827 68 22 " " `` 8827 68 23 many many JJ 8827 68 24 ancient ancient JJ 8827 68 25 authorities authority NNS 8827 68 26 , , , 8827 68 27 " " '' 8827 68 28 and and CC 8827 68 29 so so RB 8827 68 30 on on RB 8827 68 31 . . . 8827 69 1 Such such JJ 8827 69 2 valuation valuation NN 8827 69 3 is be VBZ 8827 69 4 not not RB 8827 69 5 attempted attempt VBN 8827 69 6 in in IN 8827 69 7 this this DT 8827 69 8 work work NN 8827 69 9 . . . 8827 70 1 12 12 CD 8827 70 2 . . . 8827 71 1 Considerable considerable JJ 8827 71 2 pains pain NNS 8827 71 3 have have VBP 8827 71 4 been be VBN 8827 71 5 bestowed bestow VBN 8827 71 6 on on IN 8827 71 7 the the DT 8827 71 8 exact exact JJ 8827 71 9 rendering rendering NN 8827 71 10 of of IN 8827 71 11 the the DT 8827 71 12 tenses tense NNS 8827 71 13 of of IN 8827 71 14 the the DT 8827 71 15 Greek greek JJ 8827 71 16 verb verb NN 8827 71 17 ; ; : 8827 71 18 for for IN 8827 71 19 by by IN 8827 71 20 inexactness inexactness NN 8827 71 21 in in IN 8827 71 22 this this DT 8827 71 23 detail detail NN 8827 71 24 the the DT 8827 71 25 true true JJ 8827 71 26 sense sense NN 8827 71 27 can can MD 8827 71 28 not not RB 8827 71 29 but but CC 8827 71 30 be be VB 8827 71 31 missed miss VBN 8827 71 32 . . . 8827 72 1 That that IN 8827 72 2 the the DT 8827 72 3 Greek greek JJ 8827 72 4 tenses tense NNS 8827 72 5 do do VBP 8827 72 6 not not RB 8827 72 7 coincide coincide VB 8827 72 8 , , , 8827 72 9 and and CC 8827 72 10 can can MD 8827 72 11 not not RB 8827 72 12 be be VB 8827 72 13 expected expect VBN 8827 72 14 to to TO 8827 72 15 coincide coincide VB 8827 72 16 with with IN 8827 72 17 those those DT 8827 72 18 of of IN 8827 72 19 the the DT 8827 72 20 English english JJ 8827 72 21 verb verb NN 8827 72 22 ; ; : 8827 72 23 that that DT 8827 72 24 -- -- : 8827 72 25 except except IN 8827 72 26 in in IN 8827 72 27 narrative narrative NN 8827 72 28 -- -- : 8827 72 29 the the DT 8827 72 30 aorist aorist NN 8827 72 31 as as IN 8827 72 32 a a DT 8827 72 33 rule rule NN 8827 72 34 is be VBZ 8827 72 35 _ _ NNP 8827 72 36 more more JJR 8827 72 37 _ _ NNP 8827 72 38 exactly exactly RB 8827 72 39 represented represent VBN 8827 72 40 in in IN 8827 72 41 English English NNP 8827 72 42 by by IN 8827 72 43 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 72 44 perfect perfect NN 8827 72 45 with with IN 8827 72 46 " " `` 8827 72 47 have have VB 8827 72 48 " " '' 8827 72 49 than than IN 8827 72 50 by by IN 8827 72 51 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 72 52 simple simple JJ 8827 72 53 past past JJ 8827 72 54 tense tense JJ 8827 72 55 ; ; : 8827 72 56 and and CC 8827 72 57 that that IN 8827 72 58 in in IN 8827 72 59 this this DT 8827 72 60 particular particular JJ 8827 72 61 the the DT 8827 72 62 A.V. A.V. NNP 8827 73 1 is be VBZ 8827 73 2 in in IN 8827 73 3 scores score NNS 8827 73 4 of of IN 8827 73 5 instances instance NNS 8827 73 6 more more RBR 8827 73 7 correct correct JJ 8827 73 8 than than IN 8827 73 9 the the DT 8827 73 10 R.V. R.V. NNP 8827 74 1 ; ; : 8827 74 2 the the DT 8827 74 3 present present JJ 8827 74 4 Translator Translator NNP 8827 74 5 has have VBZ 8827 74 6 contended contend VBN 8827 74 7 ( ( -LRB- 8827 74 8 with with IN 8827 74 9 arguments argument NNS 8827 74 10 which which WDT 8827 74 11 some some DT 8827 74 12 of of IN 8827 74 13 the the DT 8827 74 14 best good JJS 8827 74 15 scholars scholar NNS 8827 74 16 in in IN 8827 74 17 Britain Britain NNP 8827 74 18 and and CC 8827 74 19 in in IN 8827 74 20 America America NNP 8827 74 21 hold hold VBP 8827 74 22 to to TO 8827 74 23 be be VB 8827 74 24 " " `` 8827 74 25 unanswerable unanswerable JJ 8827 74 26 " " '' 8827 74 27 and and CC 8827 74 28 " " `` 8827 74 29 indisputable indisputable JJ 8827 74 30 " " '' 8827 74 31 ) ) -RRB- 8827 74 32 in in IN 8827 74 33 a a DT 8827 74 34 pamphlet pamphlet NN 8827 74 35 _ _ NNP 8827 74 36 On on IN 8827 74 37 the the DT 8827 74 38 Rendering Rendering NNP 8827 74 39 into into IN 8827 74 40 English English NNP 8827 74 41 of of IN 8827 74 42 the the DT 8827 74 43 Greek Greek NNP 8827 74 44 Aorist Aorist NNP 8827 74 45 and and CC 8827 74 46 Perfect Perfect NNP 8827 74 47 _ _ NNP 8827 74 48 . . . 8827 75 1 Even even RB 8827 75 2 an an DT 8827 75 3 outline outline NN 8827 75 4 of of IN 8827 75 5 the the DT 8827 75 6 argument argument NN 8827 75 7 can can MD 8827 75 8 not not RB 8827 75 9 be be VB 8827 75 10 given give VBN 8827 75 11 in in IN 8827 75 12 a a DT 8827 75 13 Preface Preface NNP 8827 75 14 such such JJ 8827 75 15 as as IN 8827 75 16 this this DT 8827 75 17 . . . 8827 76 1 13 13 CD 8827 76 2 . . . 8827 77 1 But but CC 8827 77 2 he -PRON- PRP 8827 77 3 who who WP 8827 77 4 would would MD 8827 77 5 make make VB 8827 77 6 a a DT 8827 77 7 truly truly RB 8827 77 8 _ _ NNP 8827 77 9 English English NNP 8827 77 10 _ _ NNP 8827 77 11 translation translation NN 8827 77 12 of of IN 8827 77 13 a a DT 8827 77 14 foreign foreign JJ 8827 77 15 book book NN 8827 77 16 must must MD 8827 77 17 not not RB 8827 77 18 only only RB 8827 77 19 select select VB 8827 77 20 the the DT 8827 77 21 right right JJ 8827 77 22 nouns noun NNS 8827 77 23 , , , 8827 77 24 adjectives adjective NNS 8827 77 25 , , , 8827 77 26 and and CC 8827 77 27 verbs verb NNS 8827 77 28 , , , 8827 77 29 insert insert VB 8827 77 30 the the DT 8827 77 31 suitable suitable JJ 8827 77 32 prepositions preposition NNS 8827 77 33 and and CC 8827 77 34 auxiliaries auxiliary NNS 8827 77 35 , , , 8827 77 36 and and CC 8827 77 37 triumph triumph NN 8827 77 38 ( ( -LRB- 8827 77 39 if if IN 8827 77 40 he -PRON- PRP 8827 77 41 can can MD 8827 77 42 ) ) -RRB- 8827 77 43 over over IN 8827 77 44 the the DT 8827 77 45 seductions seduction NNS 8827 77 46 and and CC 8827 77 47 blandishments blandishment NNS 8827 77 48 of of IN 8827 77 49 idioms idiom NNS 8827 77 50 with with IN 8827 77 51 which which WDT 8827 77 52 he -PRON- PRP 8827 77 53 has have VBZ 8827 77 54 been be VBN 8827 77 55 familiar familiar JJ 8827 77 56 from from IN 8827 77 57 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 77 58 infancy infancy NN 8827 77 59 , , , 8827 77 60 but but CC 8827 77 61 which which WDT 8827 77 62 , , , 8827 77 63 though though IN 8827 77 64 forcible forcible JJ 8827 77 65 or or CC 8827 77 66 beautiful beautiful JJ 8827 77 67 with with IN 8827 77 68 other other JJ 8827 77 69 surroundings surrounding NNS 8827 77 70 , , , 8827 77 71 are be VBP 8827 77 72 for for IN 8827 77 73 all all PDT 8827 77 74 that that DT 8827 77 75 part part NN 8827 77 76 and and CC 8827 77 77 parcel parcel NN 8827 77 78 of of IN 8827 77 79 that that DT 8827 77 80 other other JJ 8827 77 81 language language NN 8827 77 82 rather rather RB 8827 77 83 than than IN 8827 77 84 of of IN 8827 77 85 English English NNP 8827 77 86 : : : 8827 77 87 he -PRON- PRP 8827 77 88 has have VBZ 8827 77 89 also also RB 8827 77 90 to to TO 8827 77 91 beware beware VB 8827 77 92 of of IN 8827 77 93 _ _ NNP 8827 77 94 connecting connect VBG 8827 77 95 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 77 96 sentences sentence NNS 8827 77 97 _ _ NNP 8827 77 98 in in IN 8827 77 99 an an DT 8827 77 100 un un NNP 8827 77 101 - - JJ 8827 77 102 English english JJ 8827 77 103 fashion fashion NN 8827 77 104 . . . 8827 78 1 Now now RB 8827 78 2 a a DT 8827 78 3 careful careful JJ 8827 78 4 examination examination NN 8827 78 5 of of IN 8827 78 6 a a DT 8827 78 7 number number NN 8827 78 8 of of IN 8827 78 9 authors author NNS 8827 78 10 ( ( -LRB- 8827 78 11 including include VBG 8827 78 12 Scottish scottish JJ 8827 78 13 , , , 8827 78 14 Irish irish JJ 8827 78 15 , , , 8827 78 16 and and CC 8827 78 17 American american JJ 8827 78 18 ) ) -RRB- 8827 78 19 yields yield VBZ 8827 78 20 some some DT 8827 78 21 interesting interesting JJ 8827 78 22 results result NNS 8827 78 23 . . . 8827 79 1 Taking take VBG 8827 79 2 at at IN 8827 79 3 haphazard haphazard NN 8827 79 4 a a DT 8827 79 5 passage passage NN 8827 79 6 from from IN 8827 79 7 each each DT 8827 79 8 of of IN 8827 79 9 fifty fifty CD 8827 79 10 - - HYPH 8827 79 11 six six CD 8827 79 12 authors author NNS 8827 79 13 , , , 8827 79 14 and and CC 8827 79 15 counting count VBG 8827 79 16 on on RP 8827 79 17 after after IN 8827 79 18 some some DT 8827 79 19 full full JJ 8827 79 20 stop stop NN 8827 79 21 till till IN 8827 79 22 fifty fifty CD 8827 79 23 finite finite JJ 8827 79 24 verbs verb NNS 8827 79 25 -- -- : 8827 79 26 i i PRP 8827 79 27 . . . 8827 79 28 e. e. NNP 8827 79 29 verbs verbs NNP 8827 79 30 in in IN 8827 79 31 the the DT 8827 79 32 indicative indicative JJ 8827 79 33 , , , 8827 79 34 imperative imperative JJ 8827 79 35 , , , 8827 79 36 or or CC 8827 79 37 subjunctive subjunctive JJ 8827 79 38 mood mood NN 8827 79 39 -- -- : 8827 79 40 have have VBP 8827 79 41 been be VBN 8827 79 42 reached reach VBN 8827 79 43 ( ( -LRB- 8827 79 44 each each DT 8827 79 45 finite finite JJ 8827 79 46 verb verb NN 8827 79 47 , , , 8827 79 48 as as IN 8827 79 49 every every DT 8827 79 50 schoolboy schoolboy NN 8827 79 51 knows know VBZ 8827 79 52 , , , 8827 79 53 being be VBG 8827 79 54 the the DT 8827 79 55 nucleus nucleus NN 8827 79 56 of of IN 8827 79 57 one one CD 8827 79 58 sentence sentence NN 8827 79 59 or or CC 8827 79 60 clause clause NN 8827 79 61 ) ) -RRB- 8827 79 62 , , , 8827 79 63 it -PRON- PRP 8827 79 64 has have VBZ 8827 79 65 been be VBN 8827 79 66 found find VBN 8827 79 67 that that IN 8827 79 68 the the DT 8827 79 69 connecting connect VBG 8827 79 70 links link NNS 8827 79 71 of of IN 8827 79 72 the the DT 8827 79 73 fifty fifty CD 8827 79 74 - - HYPH 8827 79 75 six six CD 8827 79 76 times time NNS 8827 79 77 fifty fifty CD 8827 79 78 sentences sentence NNS 8827 79 79 are be VBP 8827 79 80 about about RB 8827 79 81 one one CD 8827 79 82 - - HYPH 8827 79 83 third third NN 8827 79 84 conjunctions conjunction NNS 8827 79 85 , , , 8827 79 86 about about RB 8827 79 87 one one CD 8827 79 88 - - HYPH 8827 79 89 third third NN 8827 79 90 adverbs adverb NNS 8827 79 91 or or CC 8827 79 92 relative relative JJ 8827 79 93 and and CC 8827 79 94 interrogative interrogative JJ 8827 79 95 pronouns pronoun NNS 8827 79 96 , , , 8827 79 97 while while IN 8827 79 98 in in IN 8827 79 99 the the DT 8827 79 100 case case NN 8827 79 101 of of IN 8827 79 102 the the DT 8827 79 103 remaining remain VBG 8827 79 104 third third NN 8827 79 105 there there EX 8827 79 106 is be VBZ 8827 79 107 what what WP 8827 79 108 the the DT 8827 79 109 grammarians grammarians NNPS 8827 79 110 call call VBP 8827 79 111 an an DT 8827 79 112 _ _ NNP 8827 79 113 asyndeton_--no asyndeton_--no NNP 8827 79 114 formal formal JJ 8827 79 115 grammatical grammatical JJ 8827 79 116 connexion connexion NN 8827 79 117 at at RB 8827 79 118 all all RB 8827 79 119 . . . 8827 80 1 But but CC 8827 80 2 in in IN 8827 80 3 the the DT 8827 80 4 writers writer NNS 8827 80 5 of of IN 8827 80 6 the the DT 8827 80 7 N.T. N.T. NNP 8827 81 1 nearly nearly RB 8827 81 2 _ _ NNP 8827 81 3 two_-thirds two_-thirds NNP 8827 81 4 of of IN 8827 81 5 the the DT 8827 81 6 connecting connect VBG 8827 81 7 links link NNS 8827 81 8 are be VBP 8827 81 9 conjunctions conjunction NNS 8827 81 10 . . . 8827 82 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 82 2 follows follow VBZ 8827 82 3 that that IN 8827 82 4 in in IN 8827 82 5 order order NN 8827 82 6 to to TO 8827 82 7 make make VB 8827 82 8 the the DT 8827 82 9 style style NN 8827 82 10 of of IN 8827 82 11 a a DT 8827 82 12 translation translation NN 8827 82 13 true true JJ 8827 82 14 idiomatic idiomatic JJ 8827 82 15 English english JJ 8827 82 16 many many JJ 8827 82 17 of of IN 8827 82 18 these these DT 8827 82 19 conjunctions conjunction NNS 8827 82 20 must must MD 8827 82 21 be be VB 8827 82 22 omitted omit VBN 8827 82 23 , , , 8827 82 24 and and CC 8827 82 25 for for IN 8827 82 26 others other NNS 8827 82 27 adverbs adverb NNS 8827 82 28 , , , 8827 82 29 & & CC 8827 82 30 c. c. NNP 8827 82 31 , , , 8827 82 32 must must MD 8827 82 33 be be VB 8827 82 34 substituted substitute VBN 8827 82 35 . . . 8827 83 1 The the DT 8827 83 2 two two CD 8827 83 3 conjunctions conjunction NNS 8827 83 4 _ _ NNP 8827 83 5 for for IN 8827 83 6 _ _ NNP 8827 83 7 and and CC 8827 83 8 _ _ NNP 8827 83 9 therefore therefore RB 8827 83 10 _ _ NNP 8827 83 11 are be VBP 8827 83 12 discussed discuss VBN 8827 83 13 at at IN 8827 83 14 some some DT 8827 83 15 length length NN 8827 83 16 in in IN 8827 83 17 two two CD 8827 83 18 Appendices Appendices NNPS 8827 83 19 to to IN 8827 83 20 the the DT 8827 83 21 above above RB 8827 83 22 - - HYPH 8827 83 23 mentioned mention VBN 8827 83 24 pamphlet pamphlet NN 8827 83 25 on on IN 8827 83 26 the the DT 8827 83 27 _ _ NNP 8827 83 28 Aorist Aorist NNP 8827 83 29 _ _ NNP 8827 83 30 , , , 8827 83 31 to to TO 8827 83 32 which which WDT 8827 83 33 the the DT 8827 83 34 reader reader NN 8827 83 35 is be VBZ 8827 83 36 referred refer VBN 8827 83 37 . . . 8827 84 1 14 14 CD 8827 84 2 . . . 8827 85 1 The the DT 8827 85 2 NOTES note NNS 8827 85 3 , , , 8827 85 4 with with IN 8827 85 5 but but CC 8827 85 6 few few JJ 8827 85 7 exceptions exception NNS 8827 85 8 , , , 8827 85 9 are be VBP 8827 85 10 not not RB 8827 85 11 of of IN 8827 85 12 the the DT 8827 85 13 nature nature NN 8827 85 14 of of IN 8827 85 15 a a DT 8827 85 16 general general JJ 8827 85 17 commentary commentary NN 8827 85 18 . . . 8827 86 1 Some some DT 8827 86 2 , , , 8827 86 3 as as RB 8827 86 4 already already RB 8827 86 5 intimated intimate VBN 8827 86 6 , , , 8827 86 7 refer refer VB 8827 86 8 to to IN 8827 86 9 the the DT 8827 86 10 readings reading NNS 8827 86 11 here here RB 8827 86 12 followed follow VBD 8827 86 13 , , , 8827 86 14 but but CC 8827 86 15 the the DT 8827 86 16 great great JJ 8827 86 17 majority majority NN 8827 86 18 are be VBP 8827 86 19 in in IN 8827 86 20 vindication vindication NN 8827 86 21 or or CC 8827 86 22 explanation explanation NN 8827 86 23 of of IN 8827 86 24 the the DT 8827 86 25 renderings rendering NNS 8827 86 26 given give VBN 8827 86 27 . . . 8827 87 1 Since since IN 8827 87 2 the the DT 8827 87 3 completion completion NN 8827 87 4 of of IN 8827 87 5 this this DT 8827 87 6 new new JJ 8827 87 7 version version NN 8827 87 8 nearly nearly RB 8827 87 9 two two CD 8827 87 10 years year NNS 8827 87 11 ago ago RB 8827 87 12 , , , 8827 87 13 ill ill JJ 8827 87 14 - - HYPH 8827 87 15 health health NN 8827 87 16 has have VBZ 8827 87 17 incapacitated incapacitate VBN 8827 87 18 the the DT 8827 87 19 Translator translator NN 8827 87 20 from from IN 8827 87 21 undertaking undertake VBG 8827 87 22 even even RB 8827 87 23 the the DT 8827 87 24 lightest light JJS 8827 87 25 work work NN 8827 87 26 . . . 8827 88 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 88 2 has have VBZ 8827 88 3 therefore therefore RB 8827 88 4 been be VBN 8827 88 5 obliged oblige VBN 8827 88 6 to to TO 8827 88 7 entrust entrust VB 8827 88 8 to to IN 8827 88 9 other other JJ 8827 88 10 hands hand NNS 8827 88 11 the the DT 8827 88 12 labour labour NN 8827 88 13 of of IN 8827 88 14 critically critically RB 8827 88 15 examining examine VBG 8827 88 16 and and CC 8827 88 17 revising revise VBG 8827 88 18 the the DT 8827 88 19 manuscript manuscript NN 8827 88 20 and and CC 8827 88 21 of of IN 8827 88 22 seeing see VBG 8827 88 23 it -PRON- PRP 8827 88 24 through through IN 8827 88 25 the the DT 8827 88 26 press press NN 8827 88 27 . . . 8827 89 1 This this DT 8827 89 2 arduous arduous JJ 8827 89 3 task task NN 8827 89 4 has have VBZ 8827 89 5 been be VBN 8827 89 6 undertaken undertake VBN 8827 89 7 by by IN 8827 89 8 Rev. Rev. NNP 8827 90 1 Ernest Ernest NNP 8827 90 2 Hampden Hampden NNP 8827 90 3 - - HYPH 8827 90 4 Cook Cook NNP 8827 90 5 , , , 8827 90 6 M.A. M.A. NNP 8827 90 7 , , , 8827 90 8 St. St. NNP 8827 90 9 John John NNP 8827 90 10 's 's POS 8827 90 11 College College NNP 8827 90 12 , , , 8827 90 13 Cambridge Cambridge NNP 8827 90 14 , , , 8827 90 15 of of IN 8827 90 16 Sandhach Sandhach NNP 8827 90 17 , , , 8827 90 18 Cheshire Cheshire NNP 8827 90 19 , , , 8827 90 20 with with IN 8827 90 21 some some DT 8827 90 22 co co NN 8827 90 23 - - NN 8827 90 24 operation operation NN 8827 90 25 from from IN 8827 90 26 one one CD 8827 90 27 of of IN 8827 90 28 the the DT 8827 90 29 Translator translator NN 8827 90 30 's 's POS 8827 90 31 sons son NNS 8827 90 32 ; ; : 8827 90 33 and and CC 8827 90 34 the the DT 8827 90 35 Translator Translator NNP 8827 90 36 is be VBZ 8827 90 37 under under IN 8827 90 38 deep deep JJ 8827 90 39 obligations obligation NNS 8827 90 40 to to IN 8827 90 41 these these DT 8827 90 42 two two CD 8827 90 43 gentlemen gentleman NNS 8827 90 44 for for IN 8827 90 45 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 90 46 kindness kindness NN 8827 90 47 in in IN 8827 90 48 the the DT 8827 90 49 matter matter NN 8827 90 50 . . . 8827 91 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 91 2 has have VBZ 8827 91 3 also also RB 8827 91 4 most most RBS 8827 91 5 cordially cordially RB 8827 91 6 to to TO 8827 91 7 thank thank VB 8827 91 8 Mr. Mr. NNP 8827 91 9 Hampden Hampden NNP 8827 91 10 - - HYPH 8827 91 11 Cook Cook NNP 8827 91 12 for for IN 8827 91 13 making make VBG 8827 91 14 the the DT 8827 91 15 existence existence NN 8827 91 16 of of IN 8827 91 17 the the DT 8827 91 18 work work NN 8827 91 19 known know VBN 8827 91 20 to to IN 8827 91 21 various various JJ 8827 91 22 members member NNS 8827 91 23 of of IN 8827 91 24 the the DT 8827 91 25 OLD old JJ 8827 91 26 MILLHILIANS MILLHILIANS NNP 8827 91 27 ' ' '' 8827 91 28 CLUB CLUB NNP 8827 91 29 and and CC 8827 91 30 other other JJ 8827 91 31 former former JJ 8827 91 32 pupils pupil NNS 8827 91 33 of of IN 8827 91 34 the the DT 8827 91 35 Translator Translator NNP 8827 91 36 , , , 8827 91 37 who who WP 8827 91 38 in in IN 8827 91 39 a a DT 8827 91 40 truly truly RB 8827 91 41 substantial substantial JJ 8827 91 42 manner manner NN 8827 91 43 have have VBP 8827 91 44 manifested manifest VBN 8827 91 45 a a DT 8827 91 46 generous generous JJ 8827 91 47 determination determination NN 8827 91 48 to to TO 8827 91 49 enable enable VB 8827 91 50 the the DT 8827 91 51 volume volume NN 8827 91 52 to to TO 8827 91 53 see see VB 8827 91 54 the the DT 8827 91 55 light light NN 8827 91 56 . . . 8827 92 1 Very very RB 8827 92 2 grateful grateful JJ 8827 92 3 does do VBZ 8827 92 4 the the DT 8827 92 5 Translator translator NN 8827 92 6 feel feel VB 8827 92 7 to to IN 8827 92 8 them -PRON- PRP 8827 92 9 for for IN 8827 92 10 this this DT 8827 92 11 signal signal NN 8827 92 12 mark mark NN 8827 92 13 of of IN 8827 92 14 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 92 15 friendship friendship NN 8827 92 16 . . . 8827 93 1 Mr. Mr. NNP 8827 93 2 Hampden Hampden NNP 8827 93 3 - - HYPH 8827 93 4 Cook Cook NNP 8827 93 5 is be VBZ 8827 93 6 responsible responsible JJ 8827 93 7 for for IN 8827 93 8 the the DT 8827 93 9 headings heading NNS 8827 93 10 of of IN 8827 93 11 the the DT 8827 93 12 paragraphs paragraph NNS 8827 93 13 , , , 8827 93 14 and and CC 8827 93 15 at at IN 8827 93 16 my -PRON- PRP$ 8827 93 17 express express JJ 8827 93 18 desire desire NN 8827 93 19 has have VBZ 8827 93 20 inserted insert VBN 8827 93 21 some some DT 8827 93 22 additional additional JJ 8827 93 23 notes note NNS 8827 93 24 . . . 8827 94 1 I -PRON- PRP 8827 94 2 have have VBP 8827 94 3 further further RB 8827 94 4 to to TO 8827 94 5 express express VB 8827 94 6 my -PRON- PRP$ 8827 94 7 gratitude gratitude NN 8827 94 8 to to IN 8827 94 9 Rev. Rev. NNP 8827 95 1 Frank Frank NNP 8827 95 2 Baliard Baliard NNP 8827 95 3 , , , 8827 95 4 M.A. M.A. NNP 8827 95 5 , , , 8827 95 6 B.Sc B.Sc NNP 8827 95 7 . . NNP 8827 95 8 , , , 8827 95 9 Lond Lond NNP 8827 95 10 . . NNP 8827 95 11 , , , 8827 95 12 at at IN 8827 95 13 present present NN 8827 95 14 of of IN 8827 95 15 Sharrow Sharrow NNP 8827 95 16 , , , 8827 95 17 Sheffield Sheffield NNP 8827 95 18 , , , 8827 95 19 for for IN 8827 95 20 some some DT 8827 95 21 very very RB 8827 95 22 valuable valuable JJ 8827 95 23 assistance assistance NN 8827 95 24 which which WDT 8827 95 25 he -PRON- PRP 8827 95 26 has have VBZ 8827 95 27 most most RBS 8827 95 28 kindly kindly RB 8827 95 29 given give VBN 8827 95 30 in in IN 8827 95 31 connexion connexion NN 8827 95 32 with with IN 8827 95 33 the the DT 8827 95 34 Introductions Introductions NNPS 8827 95 35 to to IN 8827 95 36 the the DT 8827 95 37 several several JJ 8827 95 38 books book NNS 8827 95 39 . . . 8827 96 1 I -PRON- PRP 8827 96 2 have have VBP 8827 96 3 also also RB 8827 96 4 the the DT 8827 96 5 pleasure pleasure NN 8827 96 6 of of IN 8827 96 7 acknowledging acknowledge VBG 8827 96 8 the the DT 8827 96 9 numerous numerous JJ 8827 96 10 valuable valuable JJ 8827 96 11 and and CC 8827 96 12 suggestive suggestive JJ 8827 96 13 criticisms criticism NNS 8827 96 14 with with IN 8827 96 15 which which WDT 8827 96 16 I -PRON- PRP 8827 96 17 have have VBP 8827 96 18 been be VBN 8827 96 19 favoured favour VBN 8827 96 20 on on IN 8827 96 21 some some DT 8827 96 22 parts part NNS 8827 96 23 of of IN 8827 96 24 the the DT 8827 96 25 work work NN 8827 96 26 , , , 8827 96 27 by by IN 8827 96 28 an an DT 8827 96 29 old old JJ 8827 96 30 friend friend NN 8827 96 31 , , , 8827 96 32 Rev. Rev. NNP 8827 97 1 Sydney Sydney NNP 8827 97 2 Thelwall Thelwall NNP 8827 97 3 , , , 8827 97 4 B.A. B.A. NNP 8827 97 5 , , , 8827 97 6 of of IN 8827 97 7 Leamington Leamington NNP 8827 97 8 , , , 8827 97 9 a a DT 8827 97 10 clergyman clergyman NN 8827 97 11 of of IN 8827 97 12 the the DT 8827 97 13 Church Church NNP 8827 97 14 of of IN 8827 97 15 England England NNP 8827 97 16 , , , 8827 97 17 whom whom WP 8827 97 18 I -PRON- PRP 8827 97 19 have have VBP 8827 97 20 known know VBN 8827 97 21 for for IN 8827 97 22 many many JJ 8827 97 23 years year NNS 8827 97 24 as as IN 8827 97 25 a a DT 8827 97 26 painstaking painstaking JJ 8827 97 27 and and CC 8827 97 28 accurate accurate JJ 8827 97 29 scholar scholar NN 8827 97 30 , , , 8827 97 31 a a DT 8827 97 32 well well RB 8827 97 33 - - HYPH 8827 97 34 read read VBN 8827 97 35 theologian theologian NN 8827 97 36 . . . 8827 98 1 and and CC 8827 98 2 a a DT 8827 98 3 thoughtful thoughtful JJ 8827 98 4 and and CC 8827 98 5 devout devout JJ 8827 98 6 student student NN 8827 98 7 of of IN 8827 98 8 Scripture scripture NN 8827 98 9 . . . 8827 99 1 I -PRON- PRP 8827 99 2 am be VBP 8827 99 3 very very RB 8827 99 4 thankful thankful JJ 8827 99 5 to to IN 8827 99 6 Mr. Mr. NNP 8827 99 7 H. H. NNP 8827 99 8 L. L. NNP 8827 99 9 Gethin Gethin NNP 8827 99 10 . . . 8827 100 1 Mr. Mr. NNP 8827 100 2 S. S. NNP 8827 100 3 Hales Hales NNP 8827 100 4 , , , 8827 100 5 Mr. Mr. NNP 8827 100 6 J. J. NNP 8827 101 1 A. A. NNP 8827 101 2 Latham Latham NNP 8827 101 3 , , , 8827 101 4 and and CC 8827 101 5 Rev. Rev. NNP 8827 102 1 T. T. NNP 8827 102 2 A. A. NNP 8827 103 1 Seed seed NN 8827 103 2 , , , 8827 103 3 for for IN 8827 103 4 the the DT 8827 103 5 care care NN 8827 103 6 with with IN 8827 103 7 which which WDT 8827 103 8 they -PRON- PRP 8827 103 9 have have VBP 8827 103 10 read read VBN 8827 103 11 the the DT 8827 103 12 proof proof NN 8827 103 13 sheets sheet NNS 8827 103 14 . . . 8827 104 1 And and CC 8827 104 2 now now RB 8827 104 3 this this DT 8827 104 4 Translation translation NN 8827 104 5 is be VBZ 8827 104 6 humbly humbly RB 8827 104 7 and and CC 8827 104 8 prayerfully prayerfully RB 8827 104 9 commended commend VBD 8827 104 10 to to IN 8827 104 11 God God NNP 8827 104 12 's 's POS 8827 104 13 gracious gracious JJ 8827 104 14 blessing blessing NN 8827 104 15 . . . 8827 105 1 R.F.W. R.F.W. NNP 8827 106 1 /1 /1 NFP 8827 106 2 . . . 8827 107 1 I -PRON- PRP 8827 107 2 am be VBP 8827 107 3 aware aware JJ 8827 107 4 of of IN 8827 107 5 what what WP 8827 107 6 Proffessor Proffessor NNP 8827 107 7 Blackie Blackie NNP 8827 107 8 has have VBZ 8827 107 9 written write VBN 8827 107 10 on on IN 8827 107 11 this this DT 8827 107 12 subject subject NN 8827 107 13 ( ( -LRB- 8827 107 14 _ _ NNP 8827 107 15 Aeschylus Aeschylus NNP 8827 107 16 _ _ NNP 8827 107 17 , , , 8827 107 18 Pref Pref NNP 8827 107 19 . . . 8827 108 1 p. p. NN 8827 108 2 viii viii NNP 8827 108 3 ) ) -RRB- 8827 108 4 but but CC 8827 108 5 the the DT 8827 108 6 problem problem NN 8827 108 7 endeavoured endeavour VBD 8827 108 8 to to TO 8827 108 9 be be VB 8827 108 10 solved solve VBN 8827 108 11 in in IN 8827 108 12 this this DT 8827 108 13 Translation translation NN 8827 108 14 is be VBZ 8827 108 15 as as RB 8827 108 16 above above RB 8827 108 17 stated state VBN 8827 108 18 . . . 8827 109 1 /2 /2 : 8827 109 2 . . . 8827 110 1 A a DT 8827 110 2 flagrant flagrant JJ 8827 110 3 instance instance NN 8827 110 4 is be VBZ 8827 110 5 the the DT 8827 110 6 " " `` 8827 110 7 having have VBG 8827 110 8 in in IN 8827 110 9 a a DT 8827 110 10 readiness readiness NN 8827 110 11 " " '' 8827 110 12 of of IN 8827 110 13 2 2 CD 8827 110 14 Cor Cor NNP 8827 110 15 . . . 8827 111 1 10.6 10.6 CD 8827 111 2 , , , 8827 111 3 A.V. A.V. NNP 8827 112 1 althoglgh althoglgh NNP 8827 112 2 in in IN 8827 112 3 Tyndale Tyndale NNP 8827 112 4 we -PRON- PRP 8827 112 5 find find VBP 8827 112 6 " " '' 8827 112 7 and and CC 8827 112 8 are be VBP 8827 112 9 redy redy JJ 8827 112 10 to to TO 8827 112 11 take take VB 8827 112 12 vengeaunce vengeaunce NN 8827 112 13 , , , 8827 112 14 " " '' 8827 112 15 and and CC 8827 112 16 even even RB 8827 112 17 Wiclif Wiclif NNP 8827 112 18 writes write VBZ 8827 112 19 " " `` 8827 112 20 and and CC 8827 112 21 we -PRON- PRP 8827 112 22 han han NNP 8827 112 23 redi redi NNP 8827 112 24 to to TO 8827 112 25 venge venge VB 8827 112 26 . . . 8827 112 27 " " '' 8827 113 1 /3 /3 , 8827 113 2 Such such JJ 8827 113 3 as as IN 8827 113 4 McClellan McClellan NNP 8827 113 5 's 's POS 8827 113 6 Four four CD 8827 113 7 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 113 8 ; ; : 8827 113 9 Westcott Westcott NNP 8827 113 10 on on IN 8827 113 11 John John NNP 8827 113 12 's 's POS 8827 113 13 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 113 14 , , , 8827 113 15 John John NNP 8827 113 16 's 's POS 8827 113 17 Epistles Epistles NNPS 8827 113 18 , , , 8827 113 19 and and CC 8827 113 20 _ _ NNP 8827 113 21 Hebrews Hebrews NNP 8827 113 22 _ _ NNP 8827 113 23 ; ; : 8827 113 24 Hackett Hackett NNP 8827 113 25 on on IN 8827 113 26 _ _ NNP 8827 113 27 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 113 28 _ _ NNP 8827 113 29 , , , 8827 113 30 Lightfoot Lightfoot NNP 8827 113 31 , , , 8827 113 32 and and CC 8827 113 33 also also RB 8827 113 34 Ellicott Ellicott NNP 8827 113 35 , , , 8827 113 36 on on IN 8827 113 37 various various JJ 8827 113 38 Epistles Epistles NNPS 8827 113 39 : : : 8827 113 40 Mayor Mayor NNP 8827 113 41 on on IN 8827 113 42 _ _ NNP 8827 113 43 James James NNP 8827 113 44 _ _ NNP 8827 113 45 ; ; : 8827 113 46 Edwards Edwards NNP 8827 113 47 on on IN 8827 113 48 _ _ NNP 8827 113 49 I -PRON- PRP 8827 113 50 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 113 51 _ _ NNP 8827 113 52 and and CC 8827 113 53 _ _ NNP 8827 113 54 Hebrews Hebrews NNP 8827 113 55 _ _ NNP 8827 113 56 ; ; : 8827 113 57 Sanday Sanday NNP 8827 113 58 and and CC 8827 113 59 Headlam Headlam NNP 8827 113 60 on on IN 8827 113 61 _ _ NNP 8827 113 62 Romans Romans NNP 8827 113 63 _ _ NNP 8827 113 64 . . . 8827 114 1 Add add VB 8827 114 2 to to IN 8827 114 3 these these DT 8827 114 4 Scrivener Scrivener NNP 8827 114 5 's 's POS 8827 114 6 very very RB 8827 114 7 valuable valuable JJ 8827 114 8 _ _ NNP 8827 114 9 Introduction introduction NN 8827 114 10 to to IN 8827 114 11 the the DT 8827 114 12 Criticism Criticism NNP 8827 114 13 of of IN 8827 114 14 the the DT 8827 114 15 N.T. N.T. NNP 8827 114 16 _ _ NNP 8827 114 17 PREFACE PREFACE NNP 8827 114 18 TO to IN 8827 114 19 THE the DT 8827 114 20 THIRD THIRD NNP 8827 114 21 EDITION edition NN 8827 114 22 For for IN 8827 114 23 the the DT 8827 114 24 purposes purpose NNS 8827 114 25 of of IN 8827 114 26 this this DT 8827 114 27 edition edition NN 8827 114 28 the the DT 8827 114 29 whole whole JJ 8827 114 30 volume volume NN 8827 114 31 has have VBZ 8827 114 32 been be VBN 8827 114 33 re re VBN 8827 114 34 - - VBN 8827 114 35 set set VBN 8827 114 36 in in IN 8827 114 37 new new JJ 8827 114 38 type type NN 8827 114 39 , , , 8827 114 40 and and CC 8827 114 41 , , , 8827 114 42 in in IN 8827 114 43 the the DT 8827 114 44 hope hope NN 8827 114 45 of of IN 8827 114 46 increasing increase VBG 8827 114 47 the the DT 8827 114 48 interest interest NN 8827 114 49 and and CC 8827 114 50 attractiveness attractiveness NN 8827 114 51 of of IN 8827 114 52 the the DT 8827 114 53 Translation translation NN 8827 114 54 , , , 8827 114 55 all all DT 8827 114 56 conversations conversation NNS 8827 114 57 have have VBP 8827 114 58 been be VBN 8827 114 59 spaced space VBN 8827 114 60 out out RP 8827 114 61 in in IN 8827 114 62 accordance accordance NN 8827 114 63 with with IN 8827 114 64 modern modern JJ 8827 114 65 custom custom NN 8827 114 66 . . . 8827 115 1 A a DT 8827 115 2 freer free JJR 8827 115 3 use use NN 8827 115 4 than than IN 8827 115 5 before before RB 8827 115 6 has have VBZ 8827 115 7 been be VBN 8827 115 8 made make VBN 8827 115 9 of of IN 8827 115 10 capital capital NN 8827 115 11 letters letter NNS 8827 115 12 , , , 8827 115 13 and and CC 8827 115 14 by by IN 8827 115 15 means mean NNS 8827 115 16 of of IN 8827 115 17 small small JJ 8827 115 18 , , , 8827 115 19 raised raise VBN 8827 115 20 figures figure NNS 8827 115 21 , , , 8827 115 22 prefixed prefix VBN 8827 115 23 to to IN 8827 115 24 words word NNS 8827 115 25 in in IN 8827 115 26 the the DT 8827 115 27 text text NN 8827 115 28 , , , 8827 115 29 an an DT 8827 115 30 indication indication NN 8827 115 31 has have VBZ 8827 115 32 been be VBN 8827 115 33 griven griven VBN 8827 115 34 whenever whenever WRB 8827 115 35 there there EX 8827 115 36 is be VBZ 8827 115 37 a a DT 8827 115 38 footnote footnote NN 8827 115 39 . . . 8827 116 1 " " `` 8827 116 2 Capernaum Capernaum NNP 8827 116 3 " " '' 8827 116 4 and and CC 8827 116 5 " " `` 8827 116 6 Philadelphia Philadelphia NNP 8827 116 7 " " '' 8827 116 8 have have VBP 8827 116 9 been be VBN 8827 116 10 substituted substitute VBN 8827 116 11 for for IN 8827 116 12 the the DT 8827 116 13 less less RBR 8827 116 14 familiar familiar JJ 8827 116 15 but but CC 8827 116 16 more more RBR 8827 116 17 literal literal JJ 8827 116 18 " " `` 8827 116 19 Capharnahum Capharnahum NNP 8827 116 20 " " '' 8827 116 21 and and CC 8827 116 22 " " `` 8827 116 23 Philadelpheia Philadelpheia NNP 8827 116 24 . . . 8827 116 25 " " '' 8827 117 1 Many many JJ 8827 117 2 errata errata NN 8827 117 3 have have VBP 8827 117 4 been be VBN 8827 117 5 corrected correct VBN 8827 117 6 , , , 8827 117 7 and and CC 8827 117 8 a a DT 8827 117 9 very very RB 8827 117 10 considerable considerable JJ 8827 117 11 number number NN 8827 117 12 of of IN 8827 117 13 what what WP 8827 117 14 seemed seem VBD 8827 117 15 to to TO 8827 117 16 be be VB 8827 117 17 infelicities infelicity NNS 8827 117 18 or or CC 8827 117 19 slight slight JJ 8827 117 20 inaccuracies inaccuracy NNS 8827 117 21 in in IN 8827 117 22 the the DT 8827 117 23 English English NNP 8827 117 24 have have VBP 8827 117 25 been be VBN 8827 117 26 removed remove VBN 8827 117 27 . . . 8827 118 1 A a DT 8827 118 2 few few JJ 8827 118 3 additional additional JJ 8827 118 4 footnotes footnote NNS 8827 118 5 have have VBP 8827 118 6 been be VBN 8827 118 7 inserted insert VBN 8827 118 8 , , , 8827 118 9 and and CC 8827 118 10 , , , 8827 118 11 for for IN 8827 118 12 the the DT 8827 118 13 most most JJS 8827 118 14 part part NN 8827 118 15 , , , 8827 118 16 those those DT 8827 118 17 for for IN 8827 118 18 which which WDT 8827 118 19 the the DT 8827 118 20 Editor Editor NNP 8827 118 21 is be VBZ 8827 118 22 responsible responsible JJ 8827 118 23 have have VBP 8827 118 24 now now RB 8827 118 25 the the DT 8827 118 26 letters letter NNS 8827 118 27 ED ED NNP 8827 118 28 . . . 8827 119 1 added add VBN 8827 119 2 to to IN 8827 119 3 them -PRON- PRP 8827 119 4 . . . 8827 120 1 Sincere sincere JJ 8827 120 2 thanks thank NNS 8827 120 3 are be VBP 8827 120 4 tendered tender VBN 8827 120 5 to to IN 8827 120 6 the the DT 8827 120 7 many many JJ 8827 120 8 kind kind JJ 8827 120 9 friends friend NNS 8827 120 10 who who WP 8827 120 11 have have VBP 8827 120 12 expressed express VBN 8827 120 13 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 120 14 appreciation appreciation NN 8827 120 15 of of IN 8827 120 16 this this DT 8827 120 17 Translation translation NN 8827 120 18 , , , 8827 120 19 or or CC 8827 120 20 have have VBP 8827 120 21 helped help VBN 8827 120 22 to to TO 8827 120 23 make make VB 8827 120 24 it -PRON- PRP 8827 120 25 better well RBR 8827 120 26 known know VBN 8827 120 27 , , , 8827 120 28 and and CC 8827 120 29 to to IN 8827 120 30 the the DT 8827 120 31 many many JJ 8827 120 32 correspondents correspondent NNS 8827 120 33 who who WP 8827 120 34 have have VBP 8827 120 35 sent send VBN 8827 120 36 criticisms criticism NNS 8827 120 37 of of IN 8827 120 38 the the DT 8827 120 39 previous previous JJ 8827 120 40 editions edition NNS 8827 120 41 , , , 8827 120 42 and and CC 8827 120 43 made make VBD 8827 120 44 useful useful JJ 8827 120 45 suggestions suggestion NNS 8827 120 46 for for IN 8827 120 47 the the DT 8827 120 48 improvement improvement NN 8827 120 49 of of IN 8827 120 50 the the DT 8827 120 51 volume volume NN 8827 120 52 . . . 8827 121 1 E.H.C. E.H.C. NNP 8827 122 1 ABBREVIATIONS abbreviation NNS 8827 122 2 USED use VBN 8827 122 3 IN in IN 8827 122 4 THE the DT 8827 122 5 NOTES NOTES NNP 8827 122 6 Aorist Aorist NNP 8827 122 7 . . . 8827 123 1 Dr. Dr. NNP 8827 123 2 Weymouth Weymouth NNP 8827 123 3 's 's POS 8827 123 4 Pamphlet Pamphlet NNP 8827 123 5 on on IN 8827 123 6 the the DT 8827 123 7 Rendering Rendering NNP 8827 123 8 of of IN 8827 123 9 the the DT 8827 123 10 Greek Greek NNP 8827 123 11 Aorist Aorist NNP 8827 123 12 and and CC 8827 123 13 Perfect Perfect NNP 8827 123 14 Tenses Tenses NNP 8827 123 15 into into IN 8827 123 16 English English NNP 8827 123 17 . . . 8827 124 1 A.V. A.V. NNP 8827 125 1 Authorised authorised JJ 8827 125 2 English English NNP 8827 125 3 Version Version NNP 8827 125 4 , , , 8827 125 5 1611 1611 CD 8827 125 6 . . . 8827 126 1 Cp cp RB 8827 126 2 . . . 8827 127 1 Compare compare VB 8827 127 2 . . . 8827 128 1 ED ED NNP 8827 128 2 . . . 8827 129 1 Notes note NNS 8827 129 2 for for IN 8827 129 3 which which WDT 8827 129 4 the the DT 8827 129 5 Editor Editor NNP 8827 129 6 is be VBZ 8827 129 7 responsible responsible JJ 8827 129 8 , , , 8827 129 9 wholly wholly RB 8827 129 10 or or CC 8827 129 11 in in IN 8827 129 12 part part NN 8827 129 13 . . . 8827 130 1 I.E. I.E. NNP 8827 131 1 That that DT 8827 131 2 is be VBZ 8827 131 3 . . . 8827 132 1 Lit Lit NNP 8827 132 2 . . . 8827 133 1 Literally literally RB 8827 133 2 . . . 8827 134 1 LXX lxx NN 8827 134 2 . . . 8827 135 1 The the DT 8827 135 2 Septuagint Septuagint NNP 8827 135 3 ( ( -LRB- 8827 135 4 Greek Greek NNP 8827 135 5 ) ) -RRB- 8827 135 6 Version version NN 8827 135 7 of of IN 8827 135 8 the the DT 8827 135 9 Old Old NNP 8827 135 10 Testament Testament NNP 8827 135 11 . . . 8827 136 1 n. n. NNP 8827 136 2 Note Note NNP 8827 136 3 . . . 8827 137 1 nn nn NNP 8827 137 2 . . . 8827 138 1 Notes note NNS 8827 138 2 . . . 8827 139 1 N.T. N.T. NNP 8827 140 1 New New NNP 8827 140 2 Testament Testament NNP 8827 140 3 . . . 8827 141 1 O.T. O.T. NNP 8827 142 1 Old Old NNP 8827 142 2 Testament Testament NNP 8827 142 3 . . . 8827 143 1 R.V. R.V. NNP 8827 144 1 Revised Revised NNP 8827 144 2 English English NNP 8827 144 3 Version Version NNP 8827 144 4 , , , 8827 144 5 1881 1881 CD 8827 144 6 - - SYM 8827 144 7 85 85 CD 8827 144 8 . . . 8827 145 1 S.H. S.H. NNP 8827 146 1 Sanday Sanday NNP 8827 146 2 and and CC 8827 146 3 Headlam Headlam NNP 8827 146 4 's 's POS 8827 146 5 Commentary Commentary NNP 8827 146 6 on on IN 8827 146 7 ' ' `` 8827 146 8 Romans Romans NNPS 8827 146 9 . . . 8827 146 10 ' ' '' 8827 147 1 V.L. V.L. NNP 8827 148 1 Varia Varia NNP 8827 148 2 Lectio Lectio NNP 8827 148 3 . . . 8827 149 1 An an DT 8827 149 2 alternative alternative JJ 8827 149 3 reading reading NN 8827 149 4 found find VBN 8827 149 5 in in IN 8827 149 6 some some DT 8827 149 7 Manuscripts Manuscripts NNPS 8827 149 8 of of IN 8827 149 9 the the DT 8827 149 10 New New NNP 8827 149 11 Testament Testament NNP 8827 149 12 . . . 8827 150 1 V.V. V.V. NNP 8827 151 1 Verses verse NNS 8827 151 2 . . . 8827 152 1 In in IN 8827 152 2 accordance accordance NN 8827 152 3 with with IN 8827 152 4 modern modern JJ 8827 152 5 English English NNP 8827 152 6 custom custom NN 8827 152 7 , , , 8827 152 8 _ _ NNP 8827 152 9 ITALICS ITALICS NNP 8827 152 10 _ _ NNP 8827 152 11 are be VBP 8827 152 12 used use VBN 8827 152 13 to to TO 8827 152 14 indicate indicate VB 8827 152 15 emphasis emphasis NN 8827 152 16 . . . 8827 153 1 [ [ -LRB- 8827 153 2 In in IN 8827 153 3 the the DT 8827 153 4 etext etext NN 8827 153 5 , , , 8827 153 6 surounded surounde VBN 8827 153 7 by by IN 8827 153 8 * * NFP 8827 153 9 * * NFP 8827 153 10 ] ] -RRB- 8827 153 11 Old Old NNP 8827 153 12 Testament Testament NNP 8827 153 13 quotations quotation NNS 8827 153 14 are be VBP 8827 153 15 printed print VBN 8827 153 16 in in IN 8827 153 17 small small JJ 8827 153 18 capitals capital NNS 8827 153 19 . . . 8827 154 1 [ [ -LRB- 8827 154 2 In in IN 8827 154 3 the the DT 8827 154 4 etext etext NN 8827 154 5 , , , 8827 154 6 surrounded surround VBN 8827 154 7 by by IN 8827 154 8 < < XX 8827 154 9 > > XX 8827 154 10 ] ] -RRB- 8827 154 11 During during IN 8827 154 12 Christ Christ NNP 8827 154 13 's 's POS 8827 154 14 earthly earthly JJ 8827 154 15 ministry ministry NN 8827 154 16 even even RB 8827 154 17 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 154 18 disciples disciple NNS 8827 154 19 did do VBD 8827 154 20 not not RB 8827 154 21 always always RB 8827 154 22 recognize recognize VB 8827 154 23 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 154 24 super super JJ 8827 154 25 - - JJ 8827 154 26 human human JJ 8827 154 27 nature nature NN 8827 154 28 and and CC 8827 154 29 dignity dignity NN 8827 154 30 . . . 8827 155 1 Accordingly accordingly RB 8827 155 2 , , , 8827 155 3 in in IN 8827 155 4 the the DT 8827 155 5 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 155 6 of of IN 8827 155 7 this this DT 8827 155 8 Translation translation NN 8827 155 9 , , , 8827 155 10 it -PRON- PRP 8827 155 11 is be VBZ 8827 155 12 only only RB 8827 155 13 when when WRB 8827 155 14 the the DT 8827 155 15 Evangelists evangelist NNS 8827 155 16 themselves -PRON- PRP 8827 155 17 use use VBP 8827 155 18 of of IN 8827 155 19 Him -PRON- PRP 8827 155 20 the the DT 8827 155 21 words word NNS 8827 155 22 " " `` 8827 155 23 He -PRON- PRP 8827 155 24 , , , 8827 155 25 " " '' 8827 155 26 " " `` 8827 155 27 Him -PRON- PRP 8827 155 28 , , , 8827 155 29 " " '' 8827 155 30 " " `` 8827 155 31 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 155 32 , , , 8827 155 33 " " '' 8827 155 34 that that IN 8827 155 35 these these DT 8827 155 36 are be VBP 8827 155 37 spelt spell VBN 8827 155 38 with with IN 8827 155 39 capital capital NN 8827 155 40 initial initial JJ 8827 155 41 letters letter NNS 8827 155 42 . . . 8827 156 1 The the DT 8827 156 2 spelling spelling NN 8827 156 3 of of IN 8827 156 4 " " `` 8827 156 5 me -PRON- PRP 8827 156 6 " " '' 8827 156 7 and and CC 8827 156 8 " " `` 8827 156 9 my -PRON- PRP$ 8827 156 10 " " '' 8827 156 11 with with IN 8827 156 12 small small JJ 8827 156 13 initial initial JJ 8827 156 14 letters letter NNS 8827 156 15 , , , 8827 156 16 when when WRB 8827 156 17 used use VBN 8827 156 18 by by IN 8827 156 19 Christ Christ NNP 8827 156 20 Himself -PRON- PRP 8827 156 21 in in IN 8827 156 22 the the DT 8827 156 23 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 156 24 , , , 8827 156 25 is be VBZ 8827 156 26 explained explain VBN 8827 156 27 by by IN 8827 156 28 the the DT 8827 156 29 fact fact NN 8827 156 30 that that IN 8827 156 31 , , , 8827 156 32 before before IN 8827 156 33 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 156 34 Resurrection resurrection NN 8827 156 35 , , , 8827 156 36 He -PRON- PRP 8827 156 37 did do VBD 8827 156 38 not not RB 8827 156 39 always always RB 8827 156 40 emphasize emphasize VB 8827 156 41 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 156 42 own own JJ 8827 156 43 super super JJ 8827 156 44 - - JJ 8827 156 45 human human JJ 8827 156 46 nature nature NN 8827 156 47 and and CC 8827 156 48 dignity dignity NN 8827 156 49 . . . 8827 157 1 The the DT 8827 157 2 Good Good NNP 8827 157 3 News News NNP 8827 157 4 as as IN 8827 157 5 Recorded record VBN 8827 157 6 by by IN 8827 157 7 Matthew Matthew NNP 8827 157 8 There there EX 8827 157 9 are be VBP 8827 157 10 ample ample JJ 8827 157 11 reasons reason NNS 8827 157 12 for for IN 8827 157 13 accepting accept VBG 8827 157 14 the the DT 8827 157 15 uniform uniform JJ 8827 157 16 tradition tradition NN 8827 157 17 which which WDT 8827 157 18 from from IN 8827 157 19 earliest early JJS 8827 157 20 times time NNS 8827 157 21 has have VBZ 8827 157 22 ascribed ascribe VBN 8827 157 23 this this DT 8827 157 24 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 157 25 to to IN 8827 157 26 Levi Levi NNP 8827 157 27 the the DT 8827 157 28 son son NN 8827 157 29 of of IN 8827 157 30 Alphaeus Alphaeus NNP 8827 157 31 , , , 8827 157 32 who who WP 8827 157 33 seems seem VBZ 8827 157 34 to to TO 8827 157 35 have have VB 8827 157 36 changed change VBN 8827 157 37 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 157 38 name name NN 8827 157 39 to to IN 8827 157 40 ' ' `` 8827 157 41 Matthew Matthew NNP 8827 157 42 ' ' '' 8827 157 43 on on IN 8827 157 44 becoming become VBG 8827 157 45 a a DT 8827 157 46 disciple disciple NN 8827 157 47 of of IN 8827 157 48 Jesus Jesus NNP 8827 157 49 . . . 8827 158 1 Our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 158 2 information information NN 8827 158 3 as as IN 8827 158 4 to to IN 8827 158 5 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 158 6 subsequent subsequent JJ 8827 158 7 life life NN 8827 158 8 is be VBZ 8827 158 9 very very RB 8827 158 10 scanty scanty NN 8827 158 11 . . . 8827 159 1 After after IN 8827 159 2 the the DT 8827 159 3 feast feast NN 8827 159 4 which which WDT 8827 159 5 he -PRON- PRP 8827 159 6 made make VBD 8827 159 7 for for IN 8827 159 8 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 159 9 old old JJ 8827 159 10 friends friend NNS 8827 159 11 ( ( -LRB- 8827 159 12 Lu Lu NNP 8827 159 13 5:29 5:29 CD 8827 159 14 ) ) -RRB- 8827 159 15 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 159 16 name name NN 8827 159 17 only only RB 8827 159 18 appears appear VBZ 8827 159 19 in in IN 8827 159 20 the the DT 8827 159 21 New New NNP 8827 159 22 Testament Testament NNP 8827 159 23 in in IN 8827 159 24 the the DT 8827 159 25 list list NN 8827 159 26 of of IN 8827 159 27 the the DT 8827 159 28 twelve twelve CD 8827 159 29 Apostles apostle NNS 8827 159 30 . . . 8827 160 1 Early early JJ 8827 160 2 Christian christian JJ 8827 160 3 writers writer NNS 8827 160 4 add add VBP 8827 160 5 little little JJ 8827 160 6 to to IN 8827 160 7 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 160 8 knowledge knowledge NN 8827 160 9 of of IN 8827 160 10 him -PRON- PRP 8827 160 11 , , , 8827 160 12 but but CC 8827 160 13 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 160 14 life life NN 8827 160 15 seems seem VBZ 8827 160 16 to to TO 8827 160 17 have have VB 8827 160 18 been be VBN 8827 160 19 quiet quiet JJ 8827 160 20 and and CC 8827 160 21 somewhat somewhat RB 8827 160 22 ascetic ascetic JJ 8827 160 23 . . . 8827 161 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 161 2 is be VBZ 8827 161 3 also also RB 8827 161 4 generally generally RB 8827 161 5 represented represent VBN 8827 161 6 as as IN 8827 161 7 having have VBG 8827 161 8 died die VBN 8827 161 9 a a DT 8827 161 10 natural natural JJ 8827 161 11 death death NN 8827 161 12 . . . 8827 162 1 Where where WRB 8827 162 2 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 162 3 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 162 4 was be VBD 8827 162 5 written write VBN 8827 162 6 , , , 8827 162 7 or or CC 8827 162 8 where where WRB 8827 162 9 he -PRON- PRP 8827 162 10 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 162 11 laboured labour VBD 8827 162 12 , , , 8827 162 13 we -PRON- PRP 8827 162 14 can can MD 8827 162 15 not not RB 8827 162 16 say say VB 8827 162 17 . . . 8827 163 1 Not not RB 8827 163 2 a a DT 8827 163 3 little little JJ 8827 163 4 controversy controversy NN 8827 163 5 has have VBZ 8827 163 6 arisen arise VBN 8827 163 7 as as IN 8827 163 8 to to IN 8827 163 9 the the DT 8827 163 10 form form NN 8827 163 11 in in IN 8827 163 12 which which WDT 8827 163 13 this this DT 8827 163 14 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 163 15 first first RB 8827 163 16 appeared appear VBD 8827 163 17 , , , 8827 163 18 that that RB 8827 163 19 is is RB 8827 163 20 , , , 8827 163 21 as as IN 8827 163 22 to to IN 8827 163 23 whether whether IN 8827 163 24 we -PRON- PRP 8827 163 25 have have VBP 8827 163 26 in in IN 8827 163 27 the the DT 8827 163 28 Greek Greek NNP 8827 163 29 MSS MSS NNP 8827 163 30 . . . 8827 164 1 an an DT 8827 164 2 original original JJ 8827 164 3 document document NN 8827 164 4 or or CC 8827 164 5 a a DT 8827 164 6 translation translation NN 8827 164 7 from from IN 8827 164 8 an an DT 8827 164 9 earlier early JJR 8827 164 10 Aramaic Aramaic NNP 8827 164 11 writing writing NN 8827 164 12 . . . 8827 165 1 Modern modern JJ 8827 165 2 scholarship scholarship NN 8827 165 3 inclines incline VBZ 8827 165 4 to to IN 8827 165 5 the the DT 8827 165 6 view view NN 8827 165 7 that that IN 8827 165 8 the the DT 8827 165 9 book book NN 8827 165 10 is be VBZ 8827 165 11 not not RB 8827 165 12 a a DT 8827 165 13 translation translation NN 8827 165 14 , , , 8827 165 15 but but CC 8827 165 16 was be VBD 8827 165 17 probably probably RB 8827 165 18 written write VBN 8827 165 19 in in IN 8827 165 20 Greek Greek NNP 8827 165 21 by by IN 8827 165 22 Matthew Matthew NNP 8827 165 23 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 165 24 , , , 8827 165 25 upon upon IN 8827 165 26 the the DT 8827 165 27 basis basis NN 8827 165 28 of of IN 8827 165 29 a a DT 8827 165 30 previously previously RB 8827 165 31 issued issue VBN 8827 165 32 collection collection NN 8827 165 33 of of IN 8827 165 34 " " `` 8827 165 35 Logia Logia NNP 8827 165 36 " " '' 8827 165 37 or or CC 8827 165 38 discourses discourse NNS 8827 165 39 , , , 8827 165 40 to to IN 8827 165 41 the the DT 8827 165 42 existence existence NN 8827 165 43 of of IN 8827 165 44 which which WDT 8827 165 45 Papias Papias NNP 8827 165 46 , , , 8827 165 47 Irenaeus Irenaeus NNP 8827 165 48 , , , 8827 165 49 Pantaenus Pantaenus NNP 8827 165 50 , , , 8827 165 51 Origen Origen NNP 8827 165 52 , , , 8827 165 53 Eusebius Eusebius NNP 8827 165 54 and and CC 8827 165 55 Jerome Jerome NNP 8827 165 56 all all DT 8827 165 57 testify testify VBP 8827 165 58 . . . 8827 166 1 The the DT 8827 166 2 date date NN 8827 166 3 of of IN 8827 166 4 the the DT 8827 166 5 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 166 6 , , , 8827 166 7 as as IN 8827 166 8 we -PRON- PRP 8827 166 9 know know VBP 8827 166 10 it -PRON- PRP 8827 166 11 , , , 8827 166 12 is be VBZ 8827 166 13 somewhat somewhat RB 8827 166 14 uncertain uncertain JJ 8827 166 15 , , , 8827 166 16 but but CC 8827 166 17 the the DT 8827 166 18 best good JJS 8827 166 19 critical critical JJ 8827 166 20 estimates estimate NNS 8827 166 21 are be VBP 8827 166 22 included include VBN 8827 166 23 between between IN 8827 166 24 70 70 CD 8827 166 25 and and CC 8827 166 26 90 90 CD 8827 166 27 , , , 8827 166 28 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 166 29 Perhaps perhaps RB 8827 166 30 , , , 8827 166 31 with with IN 8827 166 32 Harnack Harnack NNP 8827 166 33 , , , 8827 166 34 we -PRON- PRP 8827 166 35 may may MD 8827 166 36 adopt adopt VB 8827 166 37 75 75 CD 8827 166 38 , , , 8827 166 39 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 167 1 The the DT 8827 167 2 book book NN 8827 167 3 was be VBD 8827 167 4 evidently evidently RB 8827 167 5 intended intend VBN 8827 167 6 for for IN 8827 167 7 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 167 8 converts convert NNS 8827 167 9 , , , 8827 167 10 and and CC 8827 167 11 exhibits exhibit VBZ 8827 167 12 Jesus Jesus NNP 8827 167 13 as as IN 8827 167 14 the the DT 8827 167 15 God God NNP 8827 167 16 - - HYPH 8827 167 17 appointed appoint VBN 8827 167 18 Messiah Messiah NNP 8827 167 19 and and CC 8827 167 20 King King NNP 8827 167 21 , , , 8827 167 22 the the DT 8827 167 23 fulfiller fulfiller NN 8827 167 24 of of IN 8827 167 25 the the DT 8827 167 26 Law Law NNP 8827 167 27 and and CC 8827 167 28 of of IN 8827 167 29 the the DT 8827 167 30 highest high JJS 8827 167 31 expectations expectation NNS 8827 167 32 of of IN 8827 167 33 the the DT 8827 167 34 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 167 35 nation nation NN 8827 167 36 . . . 8827 168 1 This this DT 8827 168 2 speciality speciality NN 8827 168 3 of of IN 8827 168 4 aim aim NN 8827 168 5 rather rather RB 8827 168 6 enhances enhance VBZ 8827 168 7 than than IN 8827 168 8 diminishes diminish VBZ 8827 168 9 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 168 10 general general JJ 8827 168 11 value value NN 8827 168 12 . . . 8827 169 1 Renan Renan NNP 8827 169 2 found find VBD 8827 169 3 reason reason NN 8827 169 4 for for IN 8827 169 5 pronouncing pronounce VBG 8827 169 6 it -PRON- PRP 8827 169 7 " " `` 8827 169 8 the the DT 8827 169 9 most most RBS 8827 169 10 important important JJ 8827 169 11 book book NN 8827 169 12 of of IN 8827 169 13 Christendom-- Christendom-- NNS 8827 169 14 the the DT 8827 169 15 most most RBS 8827 169 16 important important JJ 8827 169 17 book book NN 8827 169 18 which which WDT 8827 169 19 has have VBZ 8827 169 20 ever ever RB 8827 169 21 been be VBN 8827 169 22 written write VBN 8827 169 23 . . . 8827 169 24 " " '' 8827 170 1 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 170 2 aim aim NN 8827 170 3 is be VBZ 8827 170 4 manifestly manifestly RB 8827 170 5 didactic didactic JJ 8827 170 6 rather rather RB 8827 170 7 than than IN 8827 170 8 chronological chronological JJ 8827 170 9 . . . 8827 171 1 The the DT 8827 171 2 Good Good NNP 8827 171 3 News News NNP 8827 171 4 as as IN 8827 171 5 Recorded record VBN 8827 171 6 by by IN 8827 171 7 Mark Mark NNP 8827 171 8 This this DT 8827 171 9 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 171 10 is be VBZ 8827 171 11 at at IN 8827 171 12 once once RB 8827 171 13 the the DT 8827 171 14 briefest brief JJS 8827 171 15 and and CC 8827 171 16 earliest early JJS 8827 171 17 of of IN 8827 171 18 the the DT 8827 171 19 four four CD 8827 171 20 . . . 8827 172 1 Modern modern JJ 8827 172 2 research research NN 8827 172 3 confirms confirm VBZ 8827 172 4 the the DT 8827 172 5 ancient ancient JJ 8827 172 6 tradition tradition NN 8827 172 7 that that WDT 8827 172 8 the the DT 8827 172 9 author author NN 8827 172 10 was be VBD 8827 172 11 Barnabas Barnabas NNP 8827 172 12 's 's POS 8827 172 13 cousin cousin NN 8827 172 14 , , , 8827 172 15 " " '' 8827 172 16 John John NNP 8827 172 17 , , , 8827 172 18 whose whose WP$ 8827 172 19 other other JJ 8827 172 20 name name NN 8827 172 21 was be VBD 8827 172 22 Mark Mark NNP 8827 172 23 , , , 8827 172 24 " " `` 8827 172 25 who who WP 8827 172 26 during during IN 8827 172 27 Paul Paul NNP 8827 172 28 's 's POS 8827 172 29 first first JJ 8827 172 30 missionary missionary JJ 8827 172 31 tour tour NN 8827 172 32 " " `` 8827 172 33 departed depart VBN 8827 172 34 from from IN 8827 172 35 them -PRON- PRP 8827 172 36 " " '' 8827 172 37 at at IN 8827 172 38 Pamphylia Pamphylia NNP 8827 172 39 , , , 8827 172 40 " " '' 8827 172 41 and and CC 8827 172 42 returned return VBD 8827 172 43 to to IN 8827 172 44 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 172 45 " " '' 8827 172 46 ( ( -LRB- 8827 172 47 see see VB 8827 172 48 Ac Ac NNP 8827 172 49 12:12,25 12:12,25 CD 8827 172 50 ; ; : 8827 172 51 15:37,39 15:37,39 CD 8827 172 52 ; ; : 8827 172 53 Co Co NNP 8827 172 54 4:1O 4:1o CD 8827 172 55 ; ; : 8827 172 56 2Ti 2ti CD 8827 172 57 4:11 4:11 CD 8827 172 58 ; ; : 8827 172 59 Phm Phm NNP 8827 172 60 1:24 1:24 CD 8827 172 61 ; ; : 8827 172 62 1Pe 1pe CD 8827 172 63 5:13 5:13 CD 8827 172 64 ) ) -RRB- 8827 172 65 . . . 8827 173 1 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 173 2 defection defection NN 8827 173 3 appeared appear VBD 8827 173 4 to to IN 8827 173 5 Paul Paul NNP 8827 173 6 sufficiently sufficiently RB 8827 173 7 serious serious JJ 8827 173 8 to to TO 8827 173 9 warrant warrant VB 8827 173 10 an an DT 8827 173 11 emphatic emphatic JJ 8827 173 12 refusal refusal NN 8827 173 13 to to TO 8827 173 14 take take VB 8827 173 15 him -PRON- PRP 8827 173 16 with with IN 8827 173 17 him -PRON- PRP 8827 173 18 on on IN 8827 173 19 a a DT 8827 173 20 second second JJ 8827 173 21 tour tour NN 8827 173 22 , , , 8827 173 23 but but CC 8827 173 24 in in IN 8827 173 25 after after IN 8827 173 26 years year NNS 8827 173 27 the the DT 8827 173 28 breach breach NN 8827 173 29 was be VBD 8827 173 30 healed heal VBN 8827 173 31 and and CC 8827 173 32 we -PRON- PRP 8827 173 33 find find VBP 8827 173 34 Mark Mark NNP 8827 173 35 with with IN 8827 173 36 Paul Paul NNP 8827 173 37 again again RB 8827 173 38 when when WRB 8827 173 39 he -PRON- PRP 8827 173 40 writes write VBZ 8827 173 41 to to TO 8827 173 42 Colossae colossae VB 8827 173 43 , , , 8827 173 44 and and CC 8827 173 45 he -PRON- PRP 8827 173 46 is be VBZ 8827 173 47 also also RB 8827 173 48 mentioned mention VBN 8827 173 49 approvingly approvingly RB 8827 173 50 in in IN 8827 173 51 the the DT 8827 173 52 second second JJ 8827 173 53 Letter letter NN 8827 173 54 to to IN 8827 173 55 Timothy Timothy NNP 8827 173 56 . . . 8827 174 1 Scholars scholar NNS 8827 174 2 are be VBP 8827 174 3 now now RB 8827 174 4 almost almost RB 8827 174 5 unanimous unanimous JJ 8827 174 6 in in IN 8827 174 7 fixing fix VBG 8827 174 8 the the DT 8827 174 9 date date NN 8827 174 10 of of IN 8827 174 11 this this DT 8827 174 12 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 174 13 between between IN 8827 174 14 63 63 CD 8827 174 15 and and CC 8827 174 16 70 70 CD 8827 174 17 , , , 8827 174 18 A. A. NNP 8827 174 19 D. D. NNP 8827 174 20 There there EX 8827 174 21 is be VBZ 8827 174 22 no no DT 8827 174 23 valid valid JJ 8827 174 24 reason reason NN 8827 174 25 for for IN 8827 174 26 questioning question VBG 8827 174 27 the the DT 8827 174 28 usual usual JJ 8827 174 29 view view NN 8827 174 30 that that IN 8827 174 31 it -PRON- PRP 8827 174 32 was be VBD 8827 174 33 written write VBN 8827 174 34 in in IN 8827 174 35 Rome Rome NNP 8827 174 36 . . . 8827 175 1 Clement Clement NNP 8827 175 2 , , , 8827 175 3 Eusebius Eusebius NNP 8827 175 4 , , , 8827 175 5 Jerome Jerome NNP 8827 175 6 and and CC 8827 175 7 Epiphanius Epiphanius NNP 8827 175 8 , , , 8827 175 9 all all DT 8827 175 10 assert assert VBP 8827 175 11 that that IN 8827 175 12 this this DT 8827 175 13 was be VBD 8827 175 14 so so RB 8827 175 15 . . . 8827 176 1 That that IN 8827 176 2 the the DT 8827 176 3 book book NN 8827 176 4 was be VBD 8827 176 5 mainly mainly RB 8827 176 6 intended intend VBN 8827 176 7 for for IN 8827 176 8 Gentiles Gentiles NNP 8827 176 9 , , , 8827 176 10 and and CC 8827 176 11 especially especially RB 8827 176 12 Romans Romans NNPS 8827 176 13 , , , 8827 176 14 seems seem VBZ 8827 176 15 probable probable JJ 8827 176 16 from from IN 8827 176 17 internal internal JJ 8827 176 18 evidence evidence NN 8827 176 19 . . . 8827 177 1 Latin latin JJ 8827 177 2 forms form NNS 8827 177 3 not not RB 8827 177 4 occurring occur VBG 8827 177 5 in in IN 8827 177 6 other other JJ 8827 177 7 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 177 8 , , , 8827 177 9 together together RB 8827 177 10 with with IN 8827 177 11 explanations explanation NNS 8827 177 12 of of IN 8827 177 13 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 177 14 terms term NNS 8827 177 15 and and CC 8827 177 16 customs custom NNS 8827 177 17 , , , 8827 177 18 and and CC 8827 177 19 the the DT 8827 177 20 omission omission NN 8827 177 21 of of IN 8827 177 22 all all DT 8827 177 23 reference reference NN 8827 177 24 to to IN 8827 177 25 the the DT 8827 177 26 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 177 27 Law Law NNP 8827 177 28 , , , 8827 177 29 point point NN 8827 177 30 in in IN 8827 177 31 this this DT 8827 177 32 direction direction NN 8827 177 33 . . . 8827 178 1 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 178 2 vividness vividness NN 8827 178 3 of of IN 8827 178 4 narration narration NN 8827 178 5 and and CC 8827 178 6 pictorial pictorial JJ 8827 178 7 minuteness minuteness NN 8827 178 8 of of IN 8827 178 9 observation observation NN 8827 178 10 bespeak bespeak VBP 8827 178 11 the the DT 8827 178 12 testimony testimony NN 8827 178 13 of of IN 8827 178 14 an an DT 8827 178 15 eye eye NN 8827 178 16 - - HYPH 8827 178 17 witness witness NN 8827 178 18 , , , 8827 178 19 and and CC 8827 178 20 the the DT 8827 178 21 assertion assertion NN 8827 178 22 of of IN 8827 178 23 Papias Papias NNP 8827 178 24 , , , 8827 178 25 quoted quote VBN 8827 178 26 by by IN 8827 178 27 Eusebius Eusebius NNP 8827 178 28 , , , 8827 178 29 that that IN 8827 178 30 Mark Mark NNP 8827 178 31 was be VBD 8827 178 32 " " `` 8827 178 33 the the DT 8827 178 34 interpreter interpreter NN 8827 178 35 of of IN 8827 178 36 Peter Peter NNP 8827 178 37 " " '' 8827 178 38 is be VBZ 8827 178 39 borne bear VBN 8827 178 40 out out RP 8827 178 41 by by IN 8827 178 42 the the DT 8827 178 43 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 178 44 itself -PRON- PRP 8827 178 45 no no RB 8827 178 46 less less JJR 8827 178 47 than than IN 8827 178 48 by by IN 8827 178 49 what what WP 8827 178 50 we -PRON- PRP 8827 178 51 otherwise otherwise RB 8827 178 52 know know VBP 8827 178 53 of of IN 8827 178 54 Mark Mark NNP 8827 178 55 and and CC 8827 178 56 Peter Peter NNP 8827 178 57 . . . 8827 179 1 In in IN 8827 179 2 a a DT 8827 179 3 real real JJ 8827 179 4 though though IN 8827 179 5 not not RB 8827 179 6 mechanical mechanical JJ 8827 179 7 sense sense NN 8827 179 8 , , , 8827 179 9 this this DT 8827 179 10 is be VBZ 8827 179 11 " " `` 8827 179 12 the the DT 8827 179 13 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 179 14 of of IN 8827 179 15 Peter Peter NNP 8827 179 16 , , , 8827 179 17 " " '' 8827 179 18 and and CC 8827 179 19 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 179 20 admitted admit VBN 8827 179 21 priority priority NN 8827 179 22 to to IN 8827 179 23 the the DT 8827 179 24 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 179 25 of of IN 8827 179 26 Matthew Matthew NNP 8827 179 27 and and CC 8827 179 28 Luke Luke NNP 8827 179 29 affords afford VBZ 8827 179 30 substantial substantial JJ 8827 179 31 reason reason NN 8827 179 32 for for IN 8827 179 33 the the DT 8827 179 34 assumption assumption NN 8827 179 35 that that IN 8827 179 36 it -PRON- PRP 8827 179 37 is be VBZ 8827 179 38 to to IN 8827 179 39 some some DT 8827 179 40 extent extent NN 8827 179 41 the the DT 8827 179 42 source source NN 8827 179 43 whence whence NN 8827 179 44 they -PRON- PRP 8827 179 45 derive derive VBP 8827 179 46 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 179 47 narratives narrative NNS 8827 179 48 , , , 8827 179 49 although although IN 8827 179 50 Papias Papias NNP 8827 179 51 distinctly distinctly RB 8827 179 52 affirms affirm VBZ 8827 179 53 that that IN 8827 179 54 Mark Mark NNP 8827 179 55 made make VBD 8827 179 56 no no DT 8827 179 57 attempt attempt NN 8827 179 58 at at IN 8827 179 59 giving give VBG 8827 179 60 a a DT 8827 179 61 carefully carefully RB 8827 179 62 arranged arrange VBN 8827 179 63 history history NN 8827 179 64 such such JJ 8827 179 65 as as IN 8827 179 66 that that DT 8827 179 67 at at IN 8827 179 68 which which WDT 8827 179 69 Luke Luke NNP 8827 179 70 confessedly confessedly RB 8827 179 71 aimed aim VBD 8827 179 72 . . . 8827 180 1 In in IN 8827 180 2 spite spite NN 8827 180 3 of of IN 8827 180 4 the the DT 8827 180 5 witness witness NN 8827 180 6 of of IN 8827 180 7 most most JJS 8827 180 8 uncial uncial JJ 8827 180 9 MSS mss NN 8827 180 10 . . . 8827 181 1 and and CC 8827 181 2 the the DT 8827 181 3 valiant valiant JJ 8827 181 4 pleading pleading NN 8827 181 5 of of IN 8827 181 6 Dean Dean NNP 8827 181 7 Burgon Burgon NNP 8827 181 8 and and CC 8827 181 9 others other NNS 8827 181 10 , , , 8827 181 11 modern modern JJ 8827 181 12 scholars scholar NNS 8827 181 13 are be VBP 8827 181 14 well well RB 8827 181 15 nigh nigh NNP 8827 181 16 unanimous unanimous JJ 8827 181 17 in in IN 8827 181 18 asserting assert VBG 8827 181 19 that that IN 8827 181 20 the the DT 8827 181 21 last last JJ 8827 181 22 twelve twelve CD 8827 181 23 verses verse NNS 8827 181 24 of of IN 8827 181 25 this this DT 8827 181 26 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 181 27 are be VBP 8827 181 28 an an DT 8827 181 29 appendix appendix NNP 8827 181 30 . . . 8827 182 1 Yet yet RB 8827 182 2 less less JJR 8827 182 3 can can MD 8827 182 4 not not RB 8827 182 5 honestly honestly RB 8827 182 6 be be VB 8827 182 7 said say VBN 8827 182 8 than than IN 8827 182 9 that that IN 8827 182 10 they -PRON- PRP 8827 182 11 " " `` 8827 182 12 must must MD 8827 182 13 have have VB 8827 182 14 been be VBN 8827 182 15 of of IN 8827 182 16 very very RB 8827 182 17 early early JJ 8827 182 18 date date NN 8827 182 19 , , , 8827 182 20 " " '' 8827 182 21 and and CC 8827 182 22 that that IN 8827 182 23 they -PRON- PRP 8827 182 24 embody embody VBP 8827 182 25 " " `` 8827 182 26 a a DT 8827 182 27 true true JJ 8827 182 28 apostolic apostolic JJ 8827 182 29 tradition tradition NN 8827 182 30 which which WDT 8827 182 31 may may MD 8827 182 32 have have VB 8827 182 33 been be VBN 8827 182 34 written write VBN 8827 182 35 by by IN 8827 182 36 some some DT 8827 182 37 companion companion NN 8827 182 38 or or CC 8827 182 39 successor successor NN 8827 182 40 of of IN 8827 182 41 the the DT 8827 182 42 original original JJ 8827 182 43 author author NN 8827 182 44 . . . 8827 182 45 " " '' 8827 183 1 In in IN 8827 183 2 one one CD 8827 183 3 Armenian armenian JJ 8827 183 4 MS MS NNP 8827 183 5 . . . 8827 183 6 they -PRON- PRP 8827 183 7 are be VBP 8827 183 8 attributed attribute VBN 8827 183 9 to to IN 8827 183 10 Aristion Aristion NNP 8827 183 11 . . . 8827 184 1 The the DT 8827 184 2 Good Good NNP 8827 184 3 News News NNP 8827 184 4 as as IN 8827 184 5 Recorded record VBN 8827 184 6 by by IN 8827 184 7 Luke Luke NNP 8827 184 8 Modern modern JJ 8827 184 9 research research NN 8827 184 10 has have VBZ 8827 184 11 abundantly abundantly RB 8827 184 12 confirmed confirm VBN 8827 184 13 the the DT 8827 184 14 ancient ancient JJ 8827 184 15 tradition tradition NN 8827 184 16 that that WDT 8827 184 17 the the DT 8827 184 18 anonymous anonymous JJ 8827 184 19 author author NN 8827 184 20 of of IN 8827 184 21 the the DT 8827 184 22 third third JJ 8827 184 23 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 184 24 is be VBZ 8827 184 25 none none NN 8827 184 26 other other JJ 8827 184 27 than than IN 8827 184 28 " " `` 8827 184 29 Luke Luke NNP 8827 184 30 the the DT 8827 184 31 beloved beloved JJ 8827 184 32 physician physician NN 8827 184 33 " " '' 8827 184 34 and and CC 8827 184 35 the the DT 8827 184 36 narrator narrator NN 8827 184 37 of of IN 8827 184 38 the the DT 8827 184 39 " " `` 8827 184 40 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 184 41 of of IN 8827 184 42 the the DT 8827 184 43 Apostles apostle NNS 8827 184 44 " " '' 8827 184 45 ( ( -LRB- 8827 184 46 see see VB 8827 184 47 . . . 8827 185 1 Col Col NNP 8827 185 2 4:14 4:14 CD 8827 185 3 ; ; : 8827 185 4 2Ti 2ti CD 8827 185 5 4:11 4:11 CD 8827 185 6 ; ; : 8827 185 7 Phm Phm NNP 8827 185 8 1:24 1:24 CD 8827 185 9 ) ) -RRB- 8827 185 10 . . . 8827 186 1 Even even RB 8827 186 2 Renan Renan NNP 8827 186 3 acknowledges acknowledge VBZ 8827 186 4 this this DT 8827 186 5 , , , 8827 186 6 and and CC 8827 186 7 the the DT 8827 186 8 objections objection NNS 8827 186 9 of of IN 8827 186 10 a a DT 8827 186 11 few few JJ 8827 186 12 extremists extremist NNS 8827 186 13 appear appear VBP 8827 186 14 to to TO 8827 186 15 have have VB 8827 186 16 been be VBN 8827 186 17 sufficiently sufficiently RB 8827 186 18 answered answer VBN 8827 186 19 . . . 8827 187 1 The the DT 8827 187 2 date date NN 8827 187 3 is be VBZ 8827 187 4 not not RB 8827 187 5 easy easy JJ 8827 187 6 to to TO 8827 187 7 settle settle VB 8827 187 8 . . . 8827 188 1 The the DT 8827 188 2 main main JJ 8827 188 3 problem problem NN 8827 188 4 is be VBZ 8827 188 5 whether whether IN 8827 188 6 the the DT 8827 188 7 book book NN 8827 188 8 was be VBD 8827 188 9 written write VBN 8827 188 10 before before IN 8827 188 11 or or CC 8827 188 12 after after IN 8827 188 13 the the DT 8827 188 14 destruction destruction NN 8827 188 15 of of IN 8827 188 16 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 188 17 in in IN 8827 188 18 70 70 CD 8827 188 19 , , , 8827 188 20 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 188 21 Not not RB 8827 188 22 a a DT 8827 188 23 few few JJ 8827 188 24 scholars scholar NNS 8827 188 25 whose whose WP$ 8827 188 26 views view NNS 8827 188 27 merit merit VBP 8827 188 28 great great JJ 8827 188 29 respect respect NN 8827 188 30 still still RB 8827 188 31 think think VBP 8827 188 32 that that IN 8827 188 33 it -PRON- PRP 8827 188 34 preceded precede VBD 8827 188 35 that that DT 8827 188 36 event event NN 8827 188 37 , , , 8827 188 38 but but CC 8827 188 39 the the DT 8827 188 40 majority majority NN 8827 188 41 of of IN 8827 188 42 critics critic NNS 8827 188 43 believe believe VBP 8827 188 44 otherwise otherwise RB 8827 188 45 . . . 8827 189 1 Three three CD 8827 189 2 principal principal JJ 8827 189 3 dates date NNS 8827 189 4 have have VBP 8827 189 5 been be VBN 8827 189 6 suggested suggest VBN 8827 189 7 , , , 8827 189 8 63 63 CD 8827 189 9 , , , 8827 189 10 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 189 11 , , , 8827 189 12 80 80 CD 8827 189 13 , , , 8827 189 14 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 189 15 , , , 8827 189 16 100 100 CD 8827 189 17 , , , 8827 189 18 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 190 1 If if IN 8827 190 2 we -PRON- PRP 8827 190 3 accept accept VBP 8827 190 4 80 80 CD 8827 190 5 , , , 8827 190 6 A. A. NNP 8827 190 7 D. D. NNP 8827 190 8 , , , 8827 190 9 we -PRON- PRP 8827 190 10 shall shall MD 8827 190 11 be be VB 8827 190 12 in in IN 8827 190 13 substantial substantial JJ 8827 190 14 accord accord NN 8827 190 15 with with IN 8827 190 16 Harnack Harnack NNP 8827 190 17 , , , 8827 190 18 McGiffert McGiffert NNP 8827 190 19 , , , 8827 190 20 and and CC 8827 190 21 Plummer Plummer NNP 8827 190 22 , , , 8827 190 23 who who WP 8827 190 24 fairly fairly RB 8827 190 25 represent represent VBP 8827 190 26 the the DT 8827 190 27 best good JJS 8827 190 28 consensus consensus NN 8827 190 29 of of IN 8827 190 30 scholarly scholarly NNP 8827 190 31 opinion opinion NN 8827 190 32 . . . 8827 191 1 There there EX 8827 191 2 is be VBZ 8827 191 3 no no DT 8827 191 4 evidence evidence NN 8827 191 5 as as IN 8827 191 6 to to IN 8827 191 7 where where WRB 8827 191 8 this this DT 8827 191 9 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 191 10 was be VBD 8827 191 11 composed compose VBN 8827 191 12 , , , 8827 191 13 although although IN 8827 191 14 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 191 15 general general JJ 8827 191 16 style style NN 8827 191 17 suggests suggest VBZ 8827 191 18 the the DT 8827 191 19 influence influence NN 8827 191 20 of of IN 8827 191 21 some some DT 8827 191 22 Hellenic Hellenic NNP 8827 191 23 centre centre NN 8827 191 24 . . . 8827 192 1 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 192 2 special special JJ 8827 192 3 characteristics characteristic NNS 8827 192 4 are be VBP 8827 192 5 plain plain JJ 8827 192 6 . . . 8827 193 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 193 2 is be VBZ 8827 193 3 written write VBN 8827 193 4 in in IN 8827 193 5 purer purer NN 8827 193 6 Greek Greek NNP 8827 193 7 than than IN 8827 193 8 the the DT 8827 193 9 other other JJ 8827 193 10 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 193 11 , , , 8827 193 12 and and CC 8827 193 13 is be VBZ 8827 193 14 manifestly manifestly RB 8827 193 15 the the DT 8827 193 16 most most RBS 8827 193 17 historic historic JJ 8827 193 18 and and CC 8827 193 19 artistic artistic JJ 8827 193 20 . . . 8827 194 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 194 2 has have VBZ 8827 194 3 also also RB 8827 194 4 the the DT 8827 194 5 widest wide JJS 8827 194 6 outlook outlook NN 8827 194 7 , , , 8827 194 8 having have VBG 8827 194 9 obviously obviously RB 8827 194 10 been be VBN 8827 194 11 compiled compile VBN 8827 194 12 for for IN 8827 194 13 Gentiles Gentiles NNP 8827 194 14 , , , 8827 194 15 and and CC 8827 194 16 , , , 8827 194 17 especially especially RB 8827 194 18 , , , 8827 194 19 for for IN 8827 194 20 Greeks Greeks NNPS 8827 194 21 . . . 8827 195 1 The the DT 8827 195 2 Author author NN 8827 195 3 was be VBD 8827 195 4 evidently evidently RB 8827 195 5 an an DT 8827 195 6 educated educate VBN 8827 195 7 man man NN 8827 195 8 and and CC 8827 195 9 probably probably RB 8827 195 10 a a DT 8827 195 11 physician physician NN 8827 195 12 , , , 8827 195 13 and and CC 8827 195 14 was be VBD 8827 195 15 also also RB 8827 195 16 a a DT 8827 195 17 close close JJ 8827 195 18 observer observer NN 8827 195 19 . . . 8827 196 1 Eighteen eighteen CD 8827 196 2 of of IN 8827 196 3 the the DT 8827 196 4 parables parable NNS 8827 196 5 and and CC 8827 196 6 six six CD 8827 196 7 of of IN 8827 196 8 the the DT 8827 196 9 miracles miracle NNS 8827 196 10 found find VBN 8827 196 11 here here RB 8827 196 12 are be VBP 8827 196 13 not not RB 8827 196 14 recorded record VBN 8827 196 15 elsewhere elsewhere RB 8827 196 16 . . . 8827 197 1 Those those DT 8827 197 2 " " `` 8827 197 3 portions portion NNS 8827 197 4 of of IN 8827 197 5 the the DT 8827 197 6 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 197 7 narrative narrative NN 8827 197 8 which which WDT 8827 197 9 Luke Luke NNP 8827 197 10 alone alone RB 8827 197 11 has have VBZ 8827 197 12 preserved preserve VBN 8827 197 13 for for IN 8827 197 14 us -PRON- PRP 8827 197 15 , , , 8827 197 16 are be VBP 8827 197 17 among among IN 8827 197 18 the the DT 8827 197 19 most most RBS 8827 197 20 beautiful beautiful JJ 8827 197 21 treasures treasure NNS 8827 197 22 which which WDT 8827 197 23 we -PRON- PRP 8827 197 24 possess possess VBP 8827 197 25 , , , 8827 197 26 and and CC 8827 197 27 we -PRON- PRP 8827 197 28 owe owe VBP 8827 197 29 them -PRON- PRP 8827 197 30 in in IN 8827 197 31 a a DT 8827 197 32 great great JJ 8827 197 33 measure measure NN 8827 197 34 to to IN 8827 197 35 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 197 36 desire desire NN 8827 197 37 to to TO 8827 197 38 make make VB 8827 197 39 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 197 40 collection collection NN 8827 197 41 as as RB 8827 197 42 full full JJ 8827 197 43 as as IN 8827 197 44 possible possible JJ 8827 197 45 . . . 8827 197 46 " " '' 8827 198 1 Luke Luke NNP 8827 198 2 's 's POS 8827 198 3 object object NN 8827 198 4 was be VBD 8827 198 5 rather rather RB 8827 198 6 to to TO 8827 198 7 write write VB 8827 198 8 history history NN 8827 198 9 than than IN 8827 198 10 construct construct VB 8827 198 11 an an DT 8827 198 12 " " `` 8827 198 13 apology apology NN 8827 198 14 " " '' 8827 198 15 and and CC 8827 198 16 for for IN 8827 198 17 this this DT 8827 198 18 reason reason NN 8827 198 19 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 198 20 order order NN 8827 198 21 is be VBZ 8827 198 22 generally generally RB 8827 198 23 chronological chronological JJ 8827 198 24 . . . 8827 199 1 This this DT 8827 199 2 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 199 3 is be VBZ 8827 199 4 often often RB 8827 199 5 termed term VBN 8827 199 6 , , , 8827 199 7 and and CC 8827 199 8 not not RB 8827 199 9 without without IN 8827 199 10 reason reason NN 8827 199 11 , , , 8827 199 12 " " '' 8827 199 13 the the DT 8827 199 14 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 199 15 of of IN 8827 199 16 Paul Paul NNP 8827 199 17 . . . 8827 199 18 " " '' 8827 200 1 Luke Luke NNP 8827 200 2 's 's POS 8827 200 3 close close JJ 8827 200 4 association association NN 8827 200 5 with with IN 8827 200 6 the the DT 8827 200 7 great great JJ 8827 200 8 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 200 9 -- -- : 8827 200 10 an an DT 8827 200 11 association association NN 8827 200 12 to to TO 8827 200 13 which which WDT 8827 200 14 the the DT 8827 200 15 record record NN 8827 200 16 in in IN 8827 200 17 the the DT 8827 200 18 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 200 19 and and CC 8827 200 20 also also RB 8827 200 21 the the DT 8827 200 22 Pauline Pauline NNP 8827 200 23 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 200 24 bear bear VBP 8827 200 25 testimony testimony NN 8827 200 26 -- -- : 8827 200 27 at at IN 8827 200 28 once once IN 8827 200 29 warrants warrant NNS 8827 200 30 and and CC 8827 200 31 explains explain VBZ 8827 200 32 the the DT 8827 200 33 ancient ancient JJ 8827 200 34 assumption assumption NN 8827 200 35 that that IN 8827 200 36 we -PRON- PRP 8827 200 37 have have VBP 8827 200 38 here here RB 8827 200 39 a a DT 8827 200 40 writing writing NN 8827 200 41 as as RB 8827 200 42 truly truly RB 8827 200 43 coloured colour VBN 8827 200 44 by by IN 8827 200 45 the the DT 8827 200 46 influence influence NN 8827 200 47 of of IN 8827 200 48 Paul Paul NNP 8827 200 49 as as IN 8827 200 50 that that DT 8827 200 51 of of IN 8827 200 52 Mark Mark NNP 8827 200 53 was be VBD 8827 200 54 by by IN 8827 200 55 Peter Peter NNP 8827 200 56 . . . 8827 201 1 This this DT 8827 201 2 is be VBZ 8827 201 3 especially especially RB 8827 201 4 the the DT 8827 201 5 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 201 6 of of IN 8827 201 7 gratuitous gratuitous JJ 8827 201 8 and and CC 8827 201 9 universal universal JJ 8827 201 10 salvation salvation NN 8827 201 11 . . . 8827 202 1 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 202 2 integrity integrity NN 8827 202 3 has have VBZ 8827 202 4 recently recently RB 8827 202 5 been be VBN 8827 202 6 placed place VBN 8827 202 7 beyond beyond IN 8827 202 8 dispute dispute NN 8827 202 9 . . . 8827 203 1 Marcion Marcion NNP 8827 203 2 's 's POS 8827 203 3 edition edition NN 8827 203 4 of of IN 8827 203 5 it -PRON- PRP 8827 203 6 in in IN 8827 203 7 140 140 CD 8827 203 8 , , , 8827 203 9 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 203 10 , , , 8827 203 11 was be VBD 8827 203 12 a a DT 8827 203 13 mutilation mutilation NN 8827 203 14 of of IN 8827 203 15 the the DT 8827 203 16 original original NN 8827 203 17 ! ! . 8827 204 1 The the DT 8827 204 2 Good Good NNP 8827 204 3 News News NNP 8827 204 4 as as IN 8827 204 5 Recorded record VBN 8827 204 6 by by IN 8827 204 7 John John NNP 8827 204 8 In in IN 8827 204 9 spite spite NN 8827 204 10 of of IN 8827 204 11 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 204 12 rejection rejection NN 8827 204 13 by by IN 8827 204 14 Marcion Marcion NNP 8827 204 15 and and CC 8827 204 16 the the DT 8827 204 17 Alogi Alogi NNP 8827 204 18 , , , 8827 204 19 the the DT 8827 204 20 fourth fourth JJ 8827 204 21 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 204 22 was be VBD 8827 204 23 accepted accept VBN 8827 204 24 by by IN 8827 204 25 most most JJS 8827 204 26 Christians Christians NNPS 8827 204 27 at at IN 8827 204 28 the the DT 8827 204 29 end end NN 8827 204 30 of of IN 8827 204 31 the the DT 8827 204 32 second second JJ 8827 204 33 century century NN 8827 204 34 as as IN 8827 204 35 having have VBG 8827 204 36 been be VBN 8827 204 37 written write VBN 8827 204 38 by by IN 8827 204 39 the the DT 8827 204 40 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 204 41 John John NNP 8827 204 42 . . . 8827 205 1 In in IN 8827 205 2 the the DT 8827 205 3 present present JJ 8827 205 4 day day NN 8827 205 5 the the DT 8827 205 6 preponderating preponderating NN 8827 205 7 tendency tendency NN 8827 205 8 among among IN 8827 205 9 scholars scholar NNS 8827 205 10 favours favour VBZ 8827 205 11 the the DT 8827 205 12 traditional traditional JJ 8827 205 13 authorship authorship NN 8827 205 14 . . . 8827 206 1 On on IN 8827 206 2 the the DT 8827 206 3 other other JJ 8827 206 4 hand hand NN 8827 206 5 the the DT 8827 206 6 most most RBS 8827 206 7 recent recent JJ 8827 206 8 scrutiny scrutiny NN 8827 206 9 asserts assert VBZ 8827 206 10 : : : 8827 206 11 " " `` 8827 206 12 Although although IN 8827 206 13 many many JJ 8827 206 14 critics critic NNS 8827 206 15 see see VBP 8827 206 16 no no DT 8827 206 17 adequate adequate JJ 8827 206 18 reason reason NN 8827 206 19 for for IN 8827 206 20 accepting accept VBG 8827 206 21 the the DT 8827 206 22 tradition tradition NN 8827 206 23 which which WDT 8827 206 24 assigns assign VBZ 8827 206 25 the the DT 8827 206 26 book book NN 8827 206 27 to to IN 8827 206 28 the the DT 8827 206 29 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 206 30 John John NNP 8827 206 31 , , , 8827 206 32 and and CC 8827 206 33 there there EX 8827 206 34 are be VBP 8827 206 35 several several JJ 8827 206 36 cogent cogent JJ 8827 206 37 reasons reason NNS 8827 206 38 to to IN 8827 206 39 the the DT 8827 206 40 contrary contrary NN 8827 206 41 , , , 8827 206 42 they -PRON- PRP 8827 206 43 would would MD 8827 206 44 hardly hardly RB 8827 206 45 deny deny VB 8827 206 46 that that IN 8827 206 47 nevertheless nevertheless RB 8827 206 48 the the DT 8827 206 49 volume volume NN 8827 206 50 is be VBZ 8827 206 51 Johannine Johannine NNP 8827 206 52 -- -- : 8827 206 53 in in IN 8827 206 54 the the DT 8827 206 55 sense sense NN 8827 206 56 that that IN 8827 206 57 any any DT 8827 206 58 historical historical JJ 8827 206 59 element element NN 8827 206 60 throughout throughout IN 8827 206 61 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 206 62 pages page NNS 8827 206 63 may may MD 8827 206 64 be be VB 8827 206 65 traced trace VBN 8827 206 66 back back RB 8827 206 67 directly directly RB 8827 206 68 or or CC 8827 206 69 indirectly indirectly RB 8827 206 70 to to IN 8827 206 71 that that DT 8827 206 72 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 206 73 and and CC 8827 206 74 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 206 75 school school NN 8827 206 76 . . . 8827 206 77 " " '' 8827 207 1 As as IN 8827 207 2 regards regard VBZ 8827 207 3 the the DT 8827 207 4 date date NN 8827 207 5 , , , 8827 207 6 no no DT 8827 207 7 more more RBR 8827 207 8 definite definite JJ 8827 207 9 period period NN 8827 207 10 can can MD 8827 207 11 be be VB 8827 207 12 indicated indicate VBN 8827 207 13 than than IN 8827 207 14 that that DT 8827 207 15 suggested suggest VBN 8827 207 16 by by IN 8827 207 17 Harnack Harnack NNP 8827 207 18 -- -- : 8827 207 19 between between IN 8827 207 20 80 80 CD 8827 207 21 , , , 8827 207 22 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 207 23 , , , 8827 207 24 and and CC 8827 207 25 110 110 CD 8827 207 26 , , , 8827 207 27 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 208 1 But but CC 8827 208 2 that that IN 8827 208 3 it -PRON- PRP 8827 208 4 was be VBD 8827 208 5 written write VBN 8827 208 6 in in IN 8827 208 7 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 208 8 is be VBZ 8827 208 9 practically practically RB 8827 208 10 certain certain JJ 8827 208 11 , , , 8827 208 12 and and CC 8827 208 13 there there EX 8827 208 14 is be VBZ 8827 208 15 evidence evidence NN 8827 208 16 that that IN 8827 208 17 it -PRON- PRP 8827 208 18 was be VBD 8827 208 19 composed compose VBN 8827 208 20 at at IN 8827 208 21 the the DT 8827 208 22 request request NN 8827 208 23 of of IN 8827 208 24 Elders Elders NNPS 8827 208 25 and and CC 8827 208 26 believers believer NNS 8827 208 27 belonging belong VBG 8827 208 28 to to IN 8827 208 29 the the DT 8827 208 30 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 208 31 of of IN 8827 208 32 Roman Roman NNP 8827 208 33 Asia Asia NNP 8827 208 34 . . . 8827 209 1 The the DT 8827 209 2 special special JJ 8827 209 3 characteristics characteristic NNS 8827 209 4 which which WDT 8827 209 5 render render VBP 8827 209 6 the the DT 8827 209 7 book book NN 8827 209 8 unique unique JJ 8827 209 9 in in IN 8827 209 10 literature literature NN 8827 209 11 are be VBP 8827 209 12 unmistakable unmistakable JJ 8827 209 13 , , , 8827 209 14 but but CC 8827 209 15 scarcely scarcely RB 8827 209 16 admit admit VB 8827 209 17 of of IN 8827 209 18 brief brief JJ 8827 209 19 expression expression NN 8827 209 20 . . . 8827 210 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 210 2 is be VBZ 8827 210 3 manifestly manifestly RB 8827 210 4 supplementary supplementary JJ 8827 210 5 to to IN 8827 210 6 the the DT 8827 210 7 other other JJ 8827 210 8 Gospels Gospels NNPS 8827 210 9 and and CC 8827 210 10 assumes assume VBZ 8827 210 11 that that IN 8827 210 12 they -PRON- PRP 8827 210 13 are be VBP 8827 210 14 known know VBN 8827 210 15 and and CC 8827 210 16 are be VBP 8827 210 17 true true JJ 8827 210 18 . . . 8827 211 1 The the DT 8827 211 2 differences difference NNS 8827 211 3 between between IN 8827 211 4 the the DT 8827 211 5 fourth fourth JJ 8827 211 6 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 211 7 and and CC 8827 211 8 the the DT 8827 211 9 other other JJ 8827 211 10 three three CD 8827 211 11 may may MD 8827 211 12 be be VB 8827 211 13 easily easily RB 8827 211 14 exaggerated exaggerate VBN 8827 211 15 , , , 8827 211 16 but but CC 8827 211 17 it -PRON- PRP 8827 211 18 must must MD 8827 211 19 be be VB 8827 211 20 acknowledged acknowledge VBN 8827 211 21 that that IN 8827 211 22 they -PRON- PRP 8827 211 23 exist exist VBP 8827 211 24 . . . 8827 212 1 They -PRON- PRP 8827 212 2 relate relate VBP 8827 212 3 , , , 8827 212 4 ( ( -LRB- 8827 212 5 1 1 LS 8827 212 6 ) ) -RRB- 8827 212 7 to to IN 8827 212 8 the the DT 8827 212 9 ministry ministry NN 8827 212 10 of of IN 8827 212 11 Christ Christ NNP 8827 212 12 , , , 8827 212 13 and and CC 8827 212 14 ( ( -LRB- 8827 212 15 2 2 LS 8827 212 16 ) ) -RRB- 8827 212 17 to to IN 8827 212 18 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 212 19 person person NN 8827 212 20 . . . 8827 213 1 As as IN 8827 213 2 to to IN 8827 213 3 the the DT 8827 213 4 former former JJ 8827 213 5 it -PRON- PRP 8827 213 6 is be VBZ 8827 213 7 impossible impossible JJ 8827 213 8 to to TO 8827 213 9 correlate correlate VB 8827 213 10 all all PDT 8827 213 11 the the DT 8827 213 12 references reference NNS 8827 213 13 to to IN 8827 213 14 distinct distinct JJ 8827 213 15 events event NNS 8827 213 16 , , , 8827 213 17 for for IN 8827 213 18 whilst whilst IN 8827 213 19 the the DT 8827 213 20 Synoptics Synoptics NNPS 8827 213 21 appear appear VBP 8827 213 22 to to TO 8827 213 23 contemplate contemplate VB 8827 213 24 little little JJ 8827 213 25 more more JJR 8827 213 26 than than IN 8827 213 27 the the DT 8827 213 28 life life NN 8827 213 29 and and CC 8827 213 30 work work NN 8827 213 31 of of IN 8827 213 32 a a DT 8827 213 33 single single JJ 8827 213 34 year year NN 8827 213 35 , , , 8827 213 36 from from IN 8827 213 37 John John NNP 8827 213 38 's 's POS 8827 213 39 standpoint standpoint NN 8827 213 40 there there EX 8827 213 41 can can MD 8827 213 42 scarcely scarcely RB 8827 213 43 have have VB 8827 213 44 been be VBN 8827 213 45 less less JJR 8827 213 46 than than IN 8827 213 47 three three CD 8827 213 48 years year NNS 8827 213 49 concerned concern VBN 8827 213 50 . . . 8827 214 1 As as IN 8827 214 2 to to IN 8827 214 3 the the DT 8827 214 4 person person NN 8827 214 5 of of IN 8827 214 6 Christ Christ NNP 8827 214 7 , , , 8827 214 8 it -PRON- PRP 8827 214 9 must must MD 8827 214 10 be be VB 8827 214 11 owned own VBN 8827 214 12 that that IN 8827 214 13 although although IN 8827 214 14 the the DT 8827 214 15 fourth fourth JJ 8827 214 16 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 214 17 makes make VBZ 8827 214 18 no no DT 8827 214 19 assertion assertion NN 8827 214 20 which which WDT 8827 214 21 contradicts contradict VBZ 8827 214 22 the the DT 8827 214 23 character character NN 8827 214 24 of of IN 8827 214 25 Teacher Teacher NNP 8827 214 26 and and CC 8827 214 27 Reformer Reformer NNP 8827 214 28 attributed attribute VBD 8827 214 29 to to IN 8827 214 30 Him -PRON- PRP 8827 214 31 by by IN 8827 214 32 the the DT 8827 214 33 Synoptics Synoptics NNPS 8827 214 34 , , , 8827 214 35 it -PRON- PRP 8827 214 36 presents present VBZ 8827 214 37 to to IN 8827 214 38 us -PRON- PRP 8827 214 39 a a DT 8827 214 40 personage personage NN 8827 214 41 so so RB 8827 214 42 enwrapped enwrap VBN 8827 214 43 in in IN 8827 214 44 mystery mystery NN 8827 214 45 and and CC 8827 214 46 dignity dignity NN 8827 214 47 as as IN 8827 214 48 altogether altogether RB 8827 214 49 to to TO 8827 214 50 transcend transcend VB 8827 214 51 ordinary ordinary JJ 8827 214 52 human human JJ 8827 214 53 nature nature NN 8827 214 54 . . . 8827 215 1 This this DT 8827 215 2 transcendent transcendent NN 8827 215 3 Personality Personality NNP 8827 215 4 is be VBZ 8827 215 5 indeed indeed RB 8827 215 6 the the DT 8827 215 7 avowed avow VBN 8827 215 8 centre centre NN 8827 215 9 of of IN 8827 215 10 the the DT 8827 215 11 whole whole JJ 8827 215 12 record record NN 8827 215 13 , , , 8827 215 14 and and CC 8827 215 15 His -PRON- PRP$ 8827 215 16 portrayal portrayal NN 8827 215 17 is be VBZ 8827 215 18 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 215 19 avowed avowed JJ 8827 215 20 purpose purpose NN 8827 215 21 . . . 8827 216 1 Yet yet RB 8827 216 2 whilst whilst IN 8827 216 3 the the DT 8827 216 4 writer writer NN 8827 216 5 never never RB 8827 216 6 clearly clearly RB 8827 216 7 reveals reveal VBZ 8827 216 8 to to IN 8827 216 9 us -PRON- PRP 8827 216 10 who who WP 8827 216 11 he -PRON- PRP 8827 216 12 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 216 13 is be VBZ 8827 216 14 , , , 8827 216 15 it -PRON- PRP 8827 216 16 is be VBZ 8827 216 17 equally equally RB 8827 216 18 manifest manifest JJ 8827 216 19 that that IN 8827 216 20 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 216 21 own own JJ 8827 216 22 convictions conviction NNS 8827 216 23 constitute constitute VBP 8827 216 24 the the DT 8827 216 25 matrix matrix NN 8827 216 26 in in IN 8827 216 27 which which WDT 8827 216 28 the the DT 8827 216 29 discourses discourse NNS 8827 216 30 and and CC 8827 216 31 events event NNS 8827 216 32 are be VBP 8827 216 33 imbedded imbed VBN 8827 216 34 , , , 8827 216 35 and and CC 8827 216 36 that that IN 8827 216 37 there there EX 8827 216 38 is be VBZ 8827 216 39 nothing nothing NN 8827 216 40 in in IN 8827 216 41 this this DT 8827 216 42 matrix matrix NN 8827 216 43 to to TO 8827 216 44 render render VB 8827 216 45 that that IN 8827 216 46 which which WDT 8827 216 47 it -PRON- PRP 8827 216 48 contains contain VBZ 8827 216 49 unreal unreal JJ 8827 216 50 or or CC 8827 216 51 untrustworthy untrustworthy JJ 8827 216 52 . . . 8827 217 1 The the DT 8827 217 2 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 217 3 of of IN 8827 217 4 the the DT 8827 217 5 Apostles apostle NNS 8827 217 6 The the DT 8827 217 7 authorship authorship NN 8827 217 8 of of IN 8827 217 9 this this DT 8827 217 10 book book NN 8827 217 11 has have VBZ 8827 217 12 been be VBN 8827 217 13 much much RB 8827 217 14 discussed discuss VBN 8827 217 15 , , , 8827 217 16 but but CC 8827 217 17 it -PRON- PRP 8827 217 18 may may MD 8827 217 19 now now RB 8827 217 20 be be VB 8827 217 21 affirmed affirm VBN 8827 217 22 with with IN 8827 217 23 certainty certainty NN 8827 217 24 that that IN 8827 217 25 the the DT 8827 217 26 writer writer NN 8827 217 27 of of IN 8827 217 28 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 217 29 third third JJ 8827 217 30 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 217 31 is be VBZ 8827 217 32 also also RB 8827 217 33 the the DT 8827 217 34 author author NN 8827 217 35 of of IN 8827 217 36 " " `` 8827 217 37 the the DT 8827 217 38 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 217 39 , , , 8827 217 40 " " '' 8827 217 41 and and CC 8827 217 42 that that IN 8827 217 43 he -PRON- PRP 8827 217 44 speaks speak VBZ 8827 217 45 from from IN 8827 217 46 the the DT 8827 217 47 standpoint standpoint NN 8827 217 48 of of IN 8827 217 49 an an DT 8827 217 50 eye eye NN 8827 217 51 - - HYPH 8827 217 52 witness witness NN 8827 217 53 in in IN 8827 217 54 the the DT 8827 217 55 four four CD 8827 217 56 we -PRON- PRP 8827 217 57 sections section NNS 8827 217 58 ( ( -LRB- 8827 217 59 16:10 16:10 CD 8827 217 60 - - SYM 8827 217 61 17 17 CD 8827 217 62 ; ; : 8827 217 63 20:5 20:5 CD 8827 217 64 - - SYM 8827 217 65 15 15 CD 8827 217 66 ; ; : 8827 217 67 21:1 21:1 CD 8827 217 68 - - SYM 8827 217 69 18 18 CD 8827 217 70 ; ; : 8827 217 71 27:1 27:1 CD 8827 217 72 - - HYPH 8827 217 73 -28:16 -28:16 NN 8827 217 74 ) ) -RRB- 8827 217 75 , , , 8827 217 76 and and CC 8827 217 77 is be VBZ 8827 217 78 known know VBN 8827 217 79 in in IN 8827 217 80 Paul Paul NNP 8827 217 81 's 's POS 8827 217 82 Letters letter NNS 8827 217 83 as as IN 8827 217 84 " " `` 8827 217 85 Luke Luke NNP 8827 217 86 the the DT 8827 217 87 beloved beloved JJ 8827 217 88 physician physician NN 8827 217 89 " " '' 8827 217 90 ( ( -LRB- 8827 217 91 Col Col NNP 8827 217 92 4:14 4:14 CD 8827 217 93 ; ; : 8827 217 94 2Ti 2ti CD 8827 217 95 4:11 4:11 CD 8827 217 96 ; ; : 8827 217 97 Phm Phm NNP 8827 217 98 1:24 1:24 CD 8827 217 99 ) ) -RRB- 8827 217 100 . . . 8827 218 1 The the DT 8827 218 2 date date NN 8827 218 3 necessarily necessarily RB 8827 218 4 depends depend VBZ 8827 218 5 upon upon IN 8827 218 6 that that DT 8827 218 7 of of IN 8827 218 8 the the DT 8827 218 9 third third JJ 8827 218 10 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 218 11 . . . 8827 219 1 If if IN 8827 219 2 the the DT 8827 219 3 latter latter NN 8827 219 4 was be VBD 8827 219 5 written write VBN 8827 219 6 before before IN 8827 219 7 the the DT 8827 219 8 destruction destruction NN 8827 219 9 of of IN 8827 219 10 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 219 11 , , , 8827 219 12 then then RB 8827 219 13 Luke Luke NNP 8827 219 14 's 's POS 8827 219 15 second second JJ 8827 219 16 work work NN 8827 219 17 may may MD 8827 219 18 well well RB 8827 219 19 have have VB 8827 219 20 been be VBN 8827 219 21 issued issue VBN 8827 219 22 between between IN 8827 219 23 66 66 CD 8827 219 24 and and CC 8827 219 25 70 70 CD 8827 219 26 , , , 8827 219 27 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 220 1 But but CC 8827 220 2 the the DT 8827 220 3 tendency tendency NN 8827 220 4 , , , 8827 220 5 in in IN 8827 220 6 the the DT 8827 220 7 present present JJ 8827 220 8 day day NN 8827 220 9 , , , 8827 220 10 is be VBZ 8827 220 11 to to TO 8827 220 12 date date NN 8827 220 13 the the DT 8827 220 14 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 220 15 somewhere somewhere RB 8827 220 16 between between IN 8827 220 17 75 75 CD 8827 220 18 and and CC 8827 220 19 85 85 CD 8827 220 20 , , , 8827 220 21 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 220 22 , , , 8827 220 23 after after IN 8827 220 24 the the DT 8827 220 25 destruction destruction NN 8827 220 26 of of IN 8827 220 27 the the DT 8827 220 28 city city NN 8827 220 29 . . . 8827 221 1 In in IN 8827 221 2 that that DT 8827 221 3 case case NN 8827 221 4 " " `` 8827 221 5 the the DT 8827 221 6 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 221 7 " " '' 8827 221 8 may may MD 8827 221 9 be be VB 8827 221 10 assigned assign VBN 8827 221 11 to to IN 8827 221 12 any any DT 8827 221 13 period period NN 8827 221 14 between between IN 8827 221 15 80 80 CD 8827 221 16 and and CC 8827 221 17 90 90 CD 8827 221 18 , , , 8827 221 19 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 222 1 The the DT 8827 222 2 latter latter JJ 8827 222 3 conclusion conclusion NN 8827 222 4 , , , 8827 222 5 though though IN 8827 222 6 by by IN 8827 222 7 no no DT 8827 222 8 means mean NNS 8827 222 9 certain certain JJ 8827 222 10 , , , 8827 222 11 is be VBZ 8827 222 12 perhaps perhaps RB 8827 222 13 the the DT 8827 222 14 more more RBR 8827 222 15 probable probable JJ 8827 222 16 . . . 8827 223 1 The the DT 8827 223 2 familiar familiar JJ 8827 223 3 title title NN 8827 223 4 of of IN 8827 223 5 the the DT 8827 223 6 book book NN 8827 223 7 is be VBZ 8827 223 8 somewhat somewhat RB 8827 223 9 unfortunate unfortunate JJ 8827 223 10 , , , 8827 223 11 for for IN 8827 223 12 it -PRON- PRP 8827 223 13 is be VBZ 8827 223 14 manifestly manifestly RB 8827 223 15 not not RB 8827 223 16 the the DT 8827 223 17 intention intention NN 8827 223 18 of of IN 8827 223 19 the the DT 8827 223 20 writer writer NN 8827 223 21 to to TO 8827 223 22 describe describe VB 8827 223 23 the the DT 8827 223 24 doings doing NNS 8827 223 25 of of IN 8827 223 26 the the DT 8827 223 27 Apostles Apostles NNP 8827 223 28 generally generally RB 8827 223 29 , , , 8827 223 30 but but CC 8827 223 31 rather rather RB 8827 223 32 just just RB 8827 223 33 so so RB 8827 223 34 much much JJ 8827 223 35 of of IN 8827 223 36 the the DT 8827 223 37 labours labour NNS 8827 223 38 of of IN 8827 223 39 Peter Peter NNP 8827 223 40 and and CC 8827 223 41 Paul Paul NNP 8827 223 42 -- -- : 8827 223 43 and and CC 8827 223 44 especially especially RB 8827 223 45 the the DT 8827 223 46 latter latter JJ 8827 223 47 -- -- : 8827 223 48 as as IN 8827 223 49 will will MD 8827 223 50 serve serve VB 8827 223 51 to to TO 8827 223 52 illustrate illustrate VB 8827 223 53 the the DT 8827 223 54 growth growth NN 8827 223 55 of of IN 8827 223 56 the the DT 8827 223 57 early early JJ 8827 223 58 Church Church NNP 8827 223 59 , , , 8827 223 60 and and CC 8827 223 61 at at IN 8827 223 62 the the DT 8827 223 63 same same JJ 8827 223 64 time time NN 8827 223 65 exhibit exhibit VB 8827 223 66 the the DT 8827 223 67 emancipation emancipation NN 8827 223 68 of of IN 8827 223 69 Christianity Christianity NNP 8827 223 70 from from IN 8827 223 71 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 223 72 primitive primitive JJ 8827 223 73 Judaic Judaic NNP 8827 223 74 origin origin NN 8827 223 75 and and CC 8827 223 76 environment environment NN 8827 223 77 . . . 8827 224 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 224 2 is be VBZ 8827 224 3 plain plain JJ 8827 224 4 that that IN 8827 224 5 the the DT 8827 224 6 writer writer NN 8827 224 7 was be VBD 8827 224 8 contemporary contemporary JJ 8827 224 9 with with IN 8827 224 10 the the DT 8827 224 11 events event NNS 8827 224 12 he -PRON- PRP 8827 224 13 describes describe VBZ 8827 224 14 , , , 8827 224 15 and and CC 8827 224 16 although although IN 8827 224 17 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 224 18 perfect perfect JJ 8827 224 19 ingenuousness ingenuousness NN 8827 224 20 ceaselessly ceaselessly RB 8827 224 21 connects connect VBZ 8827 224 22 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 224 23 narrative narrative NN 8827 224 24 with with IN 8827 224 25 history history NN 8827 224 26 , , , 8827 224 27 in in IN 8827 224 28 no no DT 8827 224 29 case case NN 8827 224 30 has have VBZ 8827 224 31 he -PRON- PRP 8827 224 32 been be VBN 8827 224 33 proved prove VBN 8827 224 34 to to TO 8827 224 35 be be VB 8827 224 36 in in IN 8827 224 37 error error NN 8827 224 38 . . . 8827 225 1 The the DT 8827 225 2 intricacy intricacy NN 8827 225 3 of of IN 8827 225 4 the the DT 8827 225 5 connexions connexion NNS 8827 225 6 between between IN 8827 225 7 this this DT 8827 225 8 record record NN 8827 225 9 and and CC 8827 225 10 the the DT 8827 225 11 Pauline Pauline NNP 8827 225 12 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 225 13 will will MD 8827 225 14 be be VB 8827 225 15 best well RBS 8827 225 16 estimated estimate VBN 8827 225 17 from from IN 8827 225 18 a a DT 8827 225 19 study study NN 8827 225 20 of of IN 8827 225 21 Paley Paley NNP 8827 225 22 's 's POS 8827 225 23 _ _ NNP 8827 225 24 Horae Horae NNP 8827 225 25 Paulinae Paulinae NNP 8827 225 26 _ _ NNP 8827 225 27 . . . 8827 226 1 We -PRON- PRP 8827 226 2 know know VBP 8827 226 3 nothing nothing NN 8827 226 4 definite definite JJ 8827 226 5 as as IN 8827 226 6 to to IN 8827 226 7 the the DT 8827 226 8 place place NN 8827 226 9 where where WRB 8827 226 10 the the DT 8827 226 11 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 226 12 was be VBD 8827 226 13 written write VBN 8827 226 14 , , , 8827 226 15 nor nor CC 8827 226 16 the the DT 8827 226 17 sources source NNS 8827 226 18 whence whence IN 8827 226 19 the the DT 8827 226 20 information information NN 8827 226 21 for for IN 8827 226 22 the the DT 8827 226 23 earlier early JJR 8827 226 24 portion portion NN 8827 226 25 of of IN 8827 226 26 the the DT 8827 226 27 narrative narrative NN 8827 226 28 was be VBD 8827 226 29 obtained obtain VBN 8827 226 30 . . . 8827 227 1 But but CC 8827 227 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 227 3 may may MD 8827 227 4 be be VB 8827 227 5 truthfully truthfully RB 8827 227 6 affirmed affirm VBN 8827 227 7 that that IN 8827 227 8 from from IN 8827 227 9 the the DT 8827 227 10 modern modern JJ 8827 227 11 critical critical JJ 8827 227 12 ordeal ordeal NN 8827 227 13 the the DT 8827 227 14 work work NN 8827 227 15 emerges emerge VBZ 8827 227 16 as as IN 8827 227 17 a a DT 8827 227 18 definite definite JJ 8827 227 19 whole whole NN 8827 227 20 , , , 8827 227 21 and and CC 8827 227 22 rather rather RB 8827 227 23 confirmed confirm VBN 8827 227 24 than than IN 8827 227 25 weakened weaken VBN 8827 227 26 in in IN 8827 227 27 regard regard NN 8827 227 28 to to IN 8827 227 29 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 227 30 general general JJ 8827 227 31 authenticity authenticity NN 8827 227 32 . . . 8827 228 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 228 2 's 's POS 8827 228 3 Letter letter NN 8827 228 4 to to IN 8827 228 5 the the DT 8827 228 6 Romans Romans NNPS 8827 228 7 The the DT 8827 228 8 four four CD 8827 228 9 books book NNS 8827 228 10 of of IN 8827 228 11 the the DT 8827 228 12 New New NNP 8827 228 13 Testament Testament NNP 8827 228 14 known know VBN 8827 228 15 as as IN 8827 228 16 the the DT 8827 228 17 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 228 18 to to IN 8827 228 19 the the DT 8827 228 20 Romans Romans NNPS 8827 228 21 , , , 8827 228 22 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 228 23 , , , 8827 228 24 and and CC 8827 228 25 Galatians Galatians NNPS 8827 228 26 , , , 8827 228 27 are be VBP 8827 228 28 allowed allow VBN 8827 228 29 by by IN 8827 228 30 practically practically RB 8827 228 31 all all DT 8827 228 32 critics critic NNS 8827 228 33 , , , 8827 228 34 including include VBG 8827 228 35 some some DT 8827 228 36 of of IN 8827 228 37 the the DT 8827 228 38 most most RBS 8827 228 39 " " `` 8827 228 40 destructive destructive JJ 8827 228 41 , , , 8827 228 42 " " '' 8827 228 43 to to TO 8827 228 44 be be VB 8827 228 45 genuine genuine JJ 8827 228 46 productions production NNS 8827 228 47 of of IN 8827 228 48 the the DT 8827 228 49 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 228 50 Paul Paul NNP 8827 228 51 . . . 8827 229 1 Opinions opinion NNS 8827 229 2 vary vary VBP 8827 229 3 as as IN 8827 229 4 to to IN 8827 229 5 the the DT 8827 229 6 order order NN 8827 229 7 of of IN 8827 229 8 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 229 9 composition composition NN 8827 229 10 . . . 8827 230 1 The the DT 8827 230 2 latest late JJS 8827 230 3 research research NN 8827 230 4 tends tend VBZ 8827 230 5 to to TO 8827 230 6 put put VB 8827 230 7 ' ' `` 8827 230 8 Galatians Galatians NNPS 8827 230 9 ' ' POS 8827 230 10 first first JJ 8827 230 11 , , , 8827 230 12 and and CC 8827 230 13 ' ' `` 8827 230 14 Romans Romans NNPS 8827 230 15 ' ' POS 8827 230 16 last last JJ 8827 230 17 , , , 8827 230 18 in in IN 8827 230 19 the the DT 8827 230 20 period period NN 8827 230 21 between between IN 8827 230 22 53 53 CD 8827 230 23 and and CC 8827 230 24 58 58 CD 8827 230 25 A. a. NN 8827 230 26 D. d. NN 8827 230 27 The the DT 8827 230 28 date date NN 8827 230 29 generally generally RB 8827 230 30 assigned assign VBN 8827 230 31 to to IN 8827 230 32 the the DT 8827 230 33 Roman Roman NNP 8827 230 34 Letter Letter NNP 8827 230 35 is be VBZ 8827 230 36 58 58 CD 8827 230 37 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 230 38 , , , 8827 230 39 but but CC 8827 230 40 recently recently RB 8827 230 41 Harnack Harnack NNP 8827 230 42 , , , 8827 230 43 McGiffert McGiffert NNP 8827 230 44 , , , 8827 230 45 Clemen Clemen NNP 8827 230 46 and and CC 8827 230 47 others other NNS 8827 230 48 have have VBP 8827 230 49 shown show VBN 8827 230 50 cause cause NN 8827 230 51 for for IN 8827 230 52 putting put VBG 8827 230 53 it -PRON- PRP 8827 230 54 some some DT 8827 230 55 four four CD 8827 230 56 years year NNS 8827 230 57 earlier early RBR 8827 230 58 . . . 8827 231 1 The the DT 8827 231 2 chronology chronology NN 8827 231 3 of of IN 8827 231 4 the the DT 8827 231 5 period period NN 8827 231 6 is be VBZ 8827 231 7 necessarily necessarily RB 8827 231 8 very very RB 8827 231 9 complicated complicated JJ 8827 231 10 . . . 8827 232 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 232 2 must must MD 8827 232 3 suffice suffice VB 8827 232 4 , , , 8827 232 5 therefore therefore RB 8827 232 6 , , , 8827 232 7 to to TO 8827 232 8 regard regard VB 8827 232 9 this this DT 8827 232 10 Letter Letter NNP 8827 232 11 as as IN 8827 232 12 having have VBG 8827 232 13 been be VBN 8827 232 14 written write VBN 8827 232 15 , , , 8827 232 16 at at IN 8827 232 17 either either DT 8827 232 18 of of IN 8827 232 19 these these DT 8827 232 20 dates date NNS 8827 232 21 , , , 8827 232 22 from from IN 8827 232 23 Corinth Corinth NNP 8827 232 24 , , , 8827 232 25 where where WRB 8827 232 26 Paul Paul NNP 8827 232 27 was be VBD 8827 232 28 staying stay VBG 8827 232 29 in in IN 8827 232 30 the the DT 8827 232 31 course course NN 8827 232 32 of of IN 8827 232 33 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 232 34 third third JJ 8827 232 35 missionary missionary JJ 8827 232 36 tour tour NN 8827 232 37 . . . 8827 233 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 233 2 was be VBD 8827 233 3 hoping hope VBG 8827 233 4 to to TO 8827 233 5 go go VB 8827 233 6 to to IN 8827 233 7 Rome Rome NNP 8827 233 8 , , , 8827 233 9 by by IN 8827 233 10 way way NN 8827 233 11 of of IN 8827 233 12 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 233 13 , , , 8827 233 14 and and CC 8827 233 15 then then RB 8827 233 16 proceed proceed VB 8827 233 17 to to IN 8827 233 18 Spain Spain NNP 8827 233 19 ( ( -LRB- 8827 233 20 15:24 15:24 CD 8827 233 21 ; ; : 8827 233 22 Ac Ac NNP 8827 233 23 24:21 24:21 CD 8827 233 24 ) ) -RRB- 8827 233 25 . . . 8827 234 1 The the DT 8827 234 2 object object NN 8827 234 3 of of IN 8827 234 4 this this DT 8827 234 5 Letter letter NN 8827 234 6 was be VBD 8827 234 7 to to TO 8827 234 8 prepare prepare VB 8827 234 9 the the DT 8827 234 10 Christians Christians NNPS 8827 234 11 in in IN 8827 234 12 Rome Rome NNP 8827 234 13 for for IN 8827 234 14 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 234 15 visit visit NN 8827 234 16 , , , 8827 234 17 and and CC 8827 234 18 make make VB 8827 234 19 a a DT 8827 234 20 clear clear JJ 8827 234 21 statement statement NN 8827 234 22 of of IN 8827 234 23 the the DT 8827 234 24 new new JJ 8827 234 25 doctrines doctrine NNS 8827 234 26 which which WDT 8827 234 27 he -PRON- PRP 8827 234 28 taught teach VBD 8827 234 29 . . . 8827 235 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 235 2 is be VBZ 8827 235 3 probable probable JJ 8827 235 4 that that IN 8827 235 5 the the DT 8827 235 6 crisis crisis NN 8827 235 7 in in IN 8827 235 8 Galatia Galatia NNP 8827 235 9 , , , 8827 235 10 to to TO 8827 235 11 which which WDT 8827 235 12 the the DT 8827 235 13 Letter letter NN 8827 235 14 sent send VBD 8827 235 15 thither thither NN 8827 235 16 bears bear VBZ 8827 235 17 witness witness NN 8827 235 18 , , , 8827 235 19 had have VBD 8827 235 20 driven drive VBN 8827 235 21 the the DT 8827 235 22 Apostle apostle NN 8827 235 23 's 's POS 8827 235 24 thoughts thought NNS 8827 235 25 in in IN 8827 235 26 the the DT 8827 235 27 direction direction NN 8827 235 28 of of IN 8827 235 29 the the DT 8827 235 30 subject subject NN 8827 235 31 of of IN 8827 235 32 Justification Justification NNP 8827 235 33 , , , 8827 235 34 and and CC 8827 235 35 he -PRON- PRP 8827 235 36 was be VBD 8827 235 37 apparently apparently RB 8827 235 38 much much RB 8827 235 39 troubled trouble VBN 8827 235 40 by by IN 8827 235 41 the the DT 8827 235 42 persistence persistence NN 8827 235 43 of of IN 8827 235 44 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 235 45 unbelief unbelief NN 8827 235 46 . . . 8827 236 1 Hence hence RB 8827 236 2 the the DT 8827 236 3 present present JJ 8827 236 4 Letter letter NN 8827 236 5 has have VBZ 8827 236 6 been be VBN 8827 236 7 well well RB 8827 236 8 termed term VBN 8827 236 9 " " '' 8827 236 10 the the DT 8827 236 11 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 236 12 according accord VBG 8827 236 13 to to IN 8827 236 14 Paul Paul NNP 8827 236 15 . . . 8827 236 16 " " '' 8827 237 1 We -PRON- PRP 8827 237 2 know know VBP 8827 237 3 really really RB 8827 237 4 nothing nothing NN 8827 237 5 about about IN 8827 237 6 the the DT 8827 237 7 Christians Christians NNPS 8827 237 8 then then RB 8827 237 9 in in IN 8827 237 10 Rome Rome NNP 8827 237 11 beyond beyond IN 8827 237 12 what what WP 8827 237 13 we -PRON- PRP 8827 237 14 find find VBP 8827 237 15 here here RB 8827 237 16 . . . 8827 238 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 238 2 is be VBZ 8827 238 3 , , , 8827 238 4 however however RB 8827 238 5 , , , 8827 238 6 fairly fairly RB 8827 238 7 certain certain JJ 8827 238 8 that that IN 8827 238 9 reports report NNS 8827 238 10 concerning concern VBG 8827 238 11 the the DT 8827 238 12 Saviour Saviour NNP 8827 238 13 would would MD 8827 238 14 be be VB 8827 238 15 taken take VBN 8827 238 16 to to IN 8827 238 17 that that DT 8827 238 18 city city NN 8827 238 19 by by IN 8827 238 20 proselytes proselyte NNS 8827 238 21 , , , 8827 238 22 both both CC 8827 238 23 before before IN 8827 238 24 and and CC 8827 238 25 after after IN 8827 238 26 the the DT 8827 238 27 events event NNS 8827 238 28 described describe VBN 8827 238 29 in in IN 8827 238 30 Acts Acts NNP 8827 238 31 2 2 CD 8827 238 32 , , , 8827 238 33 and and CC 8827 238 34 we -PRON- PRP 8827 238 35 know know VBP 8827 238 36 that that IN 8827 238 37 there there EX 8827 238 38 was be VBD 8827 238 39 a a DT 8827 238 40 large large JJ 8827 238 41 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 238 42 population population NN 8827 238 43 there there RB 8827 238 44 amongst amongst IN 8827 238 45 whom whom WP 8827 238 46 the the DT 8827 238 47 seed seed NN 8827 238 48 would would MD 8827 238 49 be be VB 8827 238 50 sown sow VBN 8827 238 51 . . . 8827 239 1 Some some DT 8827 239 2 critics critic NNS 8827 239 3 have have VBP 8827 239 4 thought think VBN 8827 239 5 " " `` 8827 239 6 that that IN 8827 239 7 a a DT 8827 239 8 note note NN 8827 239 9 addressed address VBD 8827 239 10 to to IN 8827 239 11 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 239 12 lies lie VBZ 8827 239 13 embedded embed VBN 8827 239 14 in in IN 8827 239 15 the the DT 8827 239 16 16th 16th JJ 8827 239 17 chapter chapter NN 8827 239 18 , , , 8827 239 19 " " '' 8827 239 20 because because IN 8827 239 21 , , , 8827 239 22 they -PRON- PRP 8827 239 23 say say VBP 8827 239 24 , , , 8827 239 25 it -PRON- PRP 8827 239 26 is be VBZ 8827 239 27 " " `` 8827 239 28 inconceivable inconceivable JJ 8827 239 29 that that IN 8827 239 30 Paul Paul NNP 8827 239 31 could could MD 8827 239 32 have have VB 8827 239 33 intimately intimately RB 8827 239 34 known know VBN 8827 239 35 so so RB 8827 239 36 many many JJ 8827 239 37 individuals individual NNS 8827 239 38 in in IN 8827 239 39 a a DT 8827 239 40 Church Church NNP 8827 239 41 like like IN 8827 239 42 that that DT 8827 239 43 in in IN 8827 239 44 Rome Rome NNP 8827 239 45 to to TO 8827 239 46 which which WDT 8827 239 47 he -PRON- PRP 8827 239 48 was be VBD 8827 239 49 personally personally RB 8827 239 50 a a DT 8827 239 51 stranger stranger NN 8827 239 52 . . . 8827 239 53 " " '' 8827 240 1 But but CC 8827 240 2 this this DT 8827 240 3 is be VBZ 8827 240 4 by by IN 8827 240 5 no no DT 8827 240 6 means means NN 8827 240 7 demonstrated demonstrate VBN 8827 240 8 , , , 8827 240 9 nor nor CC 8827 240 10 is be VBZ 8827 240 11 there there EX 8827 240 12 evidence evidence NN 8827 240 13 that that IN 8827 240 14 the the DT 8827 240 15 Church Church NNP 8827 240 16 there there RB 8827 240 17 was be VBD 8827 240 18 founded found VBN 8827 240 19 by by IN 8827 240 20 any any DT 8827 240 21 other other JJ 8827 240 22 Apostle apostle NN 8827 240 23 . . . 8827 241 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 241 2 's 's POS 8827 241 3 First First NNP 8827 241 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 241 5 to to IN 8827 241 6 the the DT 8827 241 7 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 241 8 The the DT 8827 241 9 genuineness genuineness NN 8827 241 10 of of IN 8827 241 11 the the DT 8827 241 12 two two CD 8827 241 13 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 241 14 to to IN 8827 241 15 the the DT 8827 241 16 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 241 17 has have VBZ 8827 241 18 never never RB 8827 241 19 been be VBN 8827 241 20 seriously seriously RB 8827 241 21 disputed dispute VBN 8827 241 22 . . . 8827 242 1 The the DT 8827 242 2 first first JJ 8827 242 3 was be VBD 8827 242 4 written write VBN 8827 242 5 by by IN 8827 242 6 the the DT 8827 242 7 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 242 8 Paul Paul NNP 8827 242 9 , , , 8827 242 10 probably probably RB 8827 242 11 in in IN 8827 242 12 the the DT 8827 242 13 early early JJ 8827 242 14 spring spring NN 8827 242 15 of of IN 8827 242 16 56 56 CD 8827 242 17 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 242 18 , , , 8827 242 19 just just RB 8827 242 20 before before IN 8827 242 21 he -PRON- PRP 8827 242 22 left leave VBD 8827 242 23 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 242 24 for for IN 8827 242 25 Troas Troas NNP 8827 242 26 in in IN 8827 242 27 the the DT 8827 242 28 course course NN 8827 242 29 of of IN 8827 242 30 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 242 31 third third JJ 8827 242 32 missionary missionary JJ 8827 242 33 tour tour NN 8827 242 34 ( ( -LRB- 8827 242 35 Ac Ac NNP 8827 242 36 19 19 CD 8827 242 37 ) ) -RRB- 8827 242 38 . . . 8827 243 1 The the DT 8827 243 2 Church Church NNP 8827 243 3 in in IN 8827 243 4 Corinth Corinth NNP 8827 243 5 had have VBD 8827 243 6 been be VBN 8827 243 7 founded found VBN 8827 243 8 by by IN 8827 243 9 him -PRON- PRP 8827 243 10 during during IN 8827 243 11 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 243 12 previous previous JJ 8827 243 13 tour tour NN 8827 243 14 ( ( -LRB- 8827 243 15 Ac Ac NNP 8827 243 16 18 18 CD 8827 243 17 ) ) -RRB- 8827 243 18 . . . 8827 244 1 After after IN 8827 244 2 some some DT 8827 244 3 hesitation hesitation NN 8827 244 4 he -PRON- PRP 8827 244 5 had have VBD 8827 244 6 been be VBN 8827 244 7 induced induce VBN 8827 244 8 to to TO 8827 244 9 preach preach VB 8827 244 10 in in IN 8827 244 11 Corinth Corinth NNP 8827 244 12 , , , 8827 244 13 and and CC 8827 244 14 in in IN 8827 244 15 spite spite NN 8827 244 16 of of IN 8827 244 17 the the DT 8827 244 18 opposition opposition NN 8827 244 19 of of IN 8827 244 20 the the DT 8827 244 21 Jews Jews NNPS 8827 244 22 such such JJ 8827 244 23 great great JJ 8827 244 24 success success NN 8827 244 25 attended attend VBD 8827 244 26 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 244 27 efforts effort NNS 8827 244 28 that that WDT 8827 244 29 he -PRON- PRP 8827 244 30 remained remain VBD 8827 244 31 there there RB 8827 244 32 for for IN 8827 244 33 more more JJR 8827 244 34 than than IN 8827 244 35 eighteen eighteen CD 8827 244 36 months month NNS 8827 244 37 . . . 8827 245 1 The the DT 8827 245 2 furious furious JJ 8827 245 3 attack attack NN 8827 245 4 upon upon IN 8827 245 5 him -PRON- PRP 8827 245 6 which which WDT 8827 245 7 was be VBD 8827 245 8 frustrated frustrate VBN 8827 245 9 by by IN 8827 245 10 Gallio Gallio NNP 8827 245 11 gave give VBD 8827 245 12 impetus impetus NN 8827 245 13 to to IN 8827 245 14 the the DT 8827 245 15 new new JJ 8827 245 16 cause cause NN 8827 245 17 , , , 8827 245 18 so so IN 8827 245 19 that that IN 8827 245 20 when when WRB 8827 245 21 the the DT 8827 245 22 Apostle apostle NN 8827 245 23 left leave VBD 8827 245 24 , , , 8827 245 25 there there EX 8827 245 26 was be VBD 8827 245 27 a a DT 8827 245 28 comparatively comparatively RB 8827 245 29 strong strong JJ 8827 245 30 Church church NN 8827 245 31 there there RB 8827 245 32 , , , 8827 245 33 consisting consist VBG 8827 245 34 mostly mostly RB 8827 245 35 of of IN 8827 245 36 Greeks Greeks NNPS 8827 245 37 , , , 8827 245 38 but but CC 8827 245 39 including include VBG 8827 245 40 not not RB 8827 245 41 a a DT 8827 245 42 few few JJ 8827 245 43 Jews Jews NNPS 8827 245 44 also also RB 8827 245 45 . . . 8827 246 1 The the DT 8827 246 2 dangers danger NNS 8827 246 3 , , , 8827 246 4 however however RB 8827 246 5 , , , 8827 246 6 arising arise VBG 8827 246 7 out out IN 8827 246 8 of of IN 8827 246 9 the the DT 8827 246 10 temperament temperament NN 8827 246 11 and and CC 8827 246 12 circumstances circumstance NNS 8827 246 13 of of IN 8827 246 14 the the DT 8827 246 15 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 246 16 soon soon RB 8827 246 17 manifested manifest VBD 8827 246 18 themselves -PRON- PRP 8827 246 19 . . . 8827 247 1 The the DT 8827 247 2 city city NN 8827 247 3 was be VBD 8827 247 4 the the DT 8827 247 5 capital capital NN 8827 247 6 of of IN 8827 247 7 Roman Roman NNP 8827 247 8 Greece Greece NNP 8827 247 9 , , , 8827 247 10 a a DT 8827 247 11 wealthy wealthy JJ 8827 247 12 commercial commercial JJ 8827 247 13 centre centre NN 8827 247 14 , , , 8827 247 15 and and CC 8827 247 16 the the DT 8827 247 17 home home NN 8827 247 18 of of IN 8827 247 19 a a DT 8827 247 20 restless restless JJ 8827 247 21 , , , 8827 247 22 superficial superficial JJ 8827 247 23 intellectualism intellectualism NN 8827 247 24 . . . 8827 248 1 Exuberant exuberant JJ 8827 248 2 verbosity verbosity NN 8827 248 3 , , , 8827 248 4 selfish selfish JJ 8827 248 5 display display NN 8827 248 6 , , , 8827 248 7 excesses excesse VBZ 8827 248 8 at at IN 8827 248 9 the the DT 8827 248 10 Lord Lord NNP 8827 248 11 's 's POS 8827 248 12 table table NN 8827 248 13 , , , 8827 248 14 unseemly unseemly JJ 8827 248 15 behaviour behaviour NN 8827 248 16 of of IN 8827 248 17 women woman NNS 8827 248 18 at at IN 8827 248 19 meetings meeting NNS 8827 248 20 for for IN 8827 248 21 worship worship NN 8827 248 22 , , , 8827 248 23 and and CC 8827 248 24 also also RB 8827 248 25 abuse abuse NN 8827 248 26 of of IN 8827 248 27 spiritual spiritual JJ 8827 248 28 gifts gift NNS 8827 248 29 , , , 8827 248 30 were be VBD 8827 248 31 complicated complicate VBN 8827 248 32 by by IN 8827 248 33 heathen heathen NNP 8827 248 34 influences influences NNP 8827 248 35 and and CC 8827 248 36 the the DT 8827 248 37 corrupting corrupt VBG 8827 248 38 customs custom NNS 8827 248 39 of of IN 8827 248 40 idolatry idolatry NN 8827 248 41 . . . 8827 249 1 Hence hence RB 8827 249 2 the the DT 8827 249 3 Apostle apostle NN 8827 249 4 's 's POS 8827 249 5 pleas plea NNS 8827 249 6 , , , 8827 249 7 rebukes rebuke VBZ 8827 249 8 , , , 8827 249 9 and and CC 8827 249 10 exhortations exhortation NNS 8827 249 11 . . . 8827 250 1 Most most RBS 8827 250 2 noteworthy noteworthy JJ 8827 250 3 of of IN 8827 250 4 all all DT 8827 250 5 is be VBZ 8827 250 6 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 250 7 forceful forceful JJ 8827 250 8 treatment treatment NN 8827 250 9 of of IN 8827 250 10 the the DT 8827 250 11 subject subject NN 8827 250 12 of of IN 8827 250 13 the the DT 8827 250 14 Resurrection Resurrection NNP 8827 250 15 of of IN 8827 250 16 Christ Christ NNP 8827 250 17 ; ; : 8827 250 18 and and CC 8827 250 19 this this DT 8827 250 20 only only RB 8827 250 21 a a DT 8827 250 22 quarter quarter NN 8827 250 23 of of IN 8827 250 24 a a DT 8827 250 25 century century NN 8827 250 26 after after IN 8827 250 27 the the DT 8827 250 28 event event NN 8827 250 29 . . . 8827 251 1 Of of IN 8827 251 2 the the DT 8827 251 3 Letter Letter NNP 8827 251 4 mentioned mention VBD 8827 251 5 in in IN 8827 251 6 5:9 5:9 CD 8827 251 7 we -PRON- PRP 8827 251 8 know know VBP 8827 251 9 nothing nothing NN 8827 251 10 . . . 8827 252 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 252 2 's 's POS 8827 252 3 Second Second NNP 8827 252 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 252 5 to to IN 8827 252 6 the the DT 8827 252 7 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 252 8 The the DT 8827 252 9 second second JJ 8827 252 10 Letter letter NN 8827 252 11 to to IN 8827 252 12 the the DT 8827 252 13 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 252 14 was be VBD 8827 252 15 probably probably RB 8827 252 16 written write VBN 8827 252 17 in in IN 8827 252 18 the the DT 8827 252 19 autumn autumn NN 8827 252 20 of of IN 8827 252 21 56 56 CD 8827 252 22 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 252 23 , , , 8827 252 24 the the DT 8827 252 25 first first JJ 8827 252 26 Letter letter NN 8827 252 27 to to IN 8827 252 28 them -PRON- PRP 8827 252 29 having have VBG 8827 252 30 been be VBN 8827 252 31 sent send VBN 8827 252 32 in in IN 8827 252 33 the the DT 8827 252 34 spring spring NN 8827 252 35 of of IN 8827 252 36 that that DT 8827 252 37 year year NN 8827 252 38 . . . 8827 253 1 But but CC 8827 253 2 there there EX 8827 253 3 are be VBP 8827 253 4 other other JJ 8827 253 5 letters letter NNS 8827 253 6 of of IN 8827 253 7 which which WDT 8827 253 8 we -PRON- PRP 8827 253 9 have have VBP 8827 253 10 no no DT 8827 253 11 clear clear JJ 8827 253 12 account account NN 8827 253 13 . . . 8827 254 1 One one CD 8827 254 2 , , , 8827 254 3 lost lose VBD 8827 254 4 to to IN 8827 254 5 us -PRON- PRP 8827 254 6 , , , 8827 254 7 evidently evidently RB 8827 254 8 preceded precede VBD 8827 254 9 the the DT 8827 254 10 first first JJ 8827 254 11 Letter letter NN 8827 254 12 ( ( -LRB- 8827 254 13 1Co 1co CD 8827 254 14 5:9 5:9 CD 8827 254 15 ) ) -RRB- 8827 254 16 . . . 8827 255 1 In in IN 8827 255 2 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 255 3 " " `` 8827 255 4 second second JJ 8827 255 5 " " '' 8827 255 6 Letter letter NN 8827 255 7 we -PRON- PRP 8827 255 8 find find VBP 8827 255 9 mention mention NN 8827 255 10 ( ( -LRB- 8827 255 11 2:2,4 2:2,4 CD 8827 255 12 ) ) -RRB- 8827 255 13 of of IN 8827 255 14 a a DT 8827 255 15 severe severe JJ 8827 255 16 communication communication NN 8827 255 17 which which WDT 8827 255 18 could could MD 8827 255 19 not not RB 8827 255 20 but but CC 8827 255 21 give give VB 8827 255 22 pain pain NN 8827 255 23 . . . 8827 256 1 Can Can MD 8827 256 2 this this DT 8827 256 3 have have VB 8827 256 4 been be VBN 8827 256 5 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 256 6 " " `` 8827 256 7 first first JJ 8827 256 8 " " '' 8827 256 9 to to IN 8827 256 10 the the DT 8827 256 11 Corinthians Corinthians NNPS 8827 256 12 ? ? . 8827 257 1 Some some DT 8827 257 2 think think VBP 8827 257 3 not not RB 8827 257 4 , , , 8827 257 5 in in IN 8827 257 6 which which WDT 8827 257 7 case case NN 8827 257 8 there there EX 8827 257 9 must must MD 8827 257 10 have have VB 8827 257 11 been be VBN 8827 257 12 an an DT 8827 257 13 " " `` 8827 257 14 intermediate intermediate JJ 8827 257 15 " " '' 8827 257 16 letter letter NN 8827 257 17 . . . 8827 258 1 This this DT 8827 258 2 some some DT 8827 258 3 students student NNS 8827 258 4 find find VBP 8827 258 5 in in IN 8827 258 6 2Co 2co CD 8827 258 7 10 10 CD 8827 258 8 1 1 CD 8827 258 9 - - HYPH 8827 258 10 8:1O. 8:1O. NNS 8827 259 1 If if IN 8827 259 2 so so RB 8827 259 3 , , , 8827 259 4 there there EX 8827 259 5 must must MD 8827 259 6 have have VB 8827 259 7 been be VBN 8827 259 8 four four CD 8827 259 9 letters letter NNS 8827 259 10 . . . 8827 260 1 Some some DT 8827 260 2 have have VBP 8827 260 3 thought think VBN 8827 260 4 that that IN 8827 260 5 in in IN 8827 260 6 2Co 2co CD 8827 260 7 6:14 6:14 CD 8827 260 8 - - HYPH 8827 260 9 7:1 7:1 CD 8827 260 10 , , , 8827 260 11 and and CC 8827 260 12 8 8 CD 8827 260 13 , , , 8827 260 14 9 9 CD 8827 260 15 , , , 8827 260 16 yet yet CC 8827 260 17 another another DT 8827 260 18 is be VBZ 8827 260 19 embedded embed VBN 8827 260 20 , , , 8827 260 21 making make VBG 8827 260 22 possibly possibly RB 8827 260 23 five five CD 8827 260 24 in in IN 8827 260 25 all all DT 8827 260 26 . . . 8827 261 1 The the DT 8827 261 2 reader reader NN 8827 261 3 must must MD 8827 261 4 form form VB 8827 261 5 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 261 6 own own JJ 8827 261 7 conclusions conclusion NNS 8827 261 8 , , , 8827 261 9 inasmuch inasmuch JJ 8827 261 10 as as IN 8827 261 11 the the DT 8827 261 12 evidence evidence NN 8827 261 13 is be VBZ 8827 261 14 almost almost RB 8827 261 15 entirely entirely RB 8827 261 16 internal internal JJ 8827 261 17 . . . 8827 262 1 On on IN 8827 262 2 the the DT 8827 262 3 whole whole NN 8827 262 4 it -PRON- PRP 8827 262 5 would would MD 8827 262 6 seem seem VB 8827 262 7 that that IN 8827 262 8 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 262 9 first first JJ 8827 262 10 Letter letter NN 8827 262 11 , , , 8827 262 12 conveyed convey VBN 8827 262 13 by by IN 8827 262 14 Titus Titus NNP 8827 262 15 , , , 8827 262 16 had have VBD 8827 262 17 produced produce VBN 8827 262 18 a a DT 8827 262 19 good good JJ 8827 262 20 effect effect NN 8827 262 21 in in IN 8827 262 22 the the DT 8827 262 23 Corinthian Corinthian NNP 8827 262 24 Church Church NNP 8827 262 25 , , , 8827 262 26 but but CC 8827 262 27 that that IN 8827 262 28 this this DT 8827 262 29 wore wear VBD 8827 262 30 off off RB 8827 262 31 , , , 8827 262 32 and and CC 8827 262 33 that that IN 8827 262 34 Titus Titus NNP 8827 262 35 returned return VBD 8827 262 36 to to IN 8827 262 37 the the DT 8827 262 38 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 262 39 in in IN 8827 262 40 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 262 41 with with IN 8827 262 42 such such JJ 8827 262 43 disquieting disquieting JJ 8827 262 44 news news NN 8827 262 45 that that IN 8827 262 46 a a DT 8827 262 47 visit visit NN 8827 262 48 of of IN 8827 262 49 Paul Paul NNP 8827 262 50 just just RB 8827 262 51 then then RB 8827 262 52 to to IN 8827 262 53 Corinth Corinth NNP 8827 262 54 would would MD 8827 262 55 have have VB 8827 262 56 been be VBN 8827 262 57 very very RB 8827 262 58 embarrassing embarrassing JJ 8827 262 59 , , , 8827 262 60 alike alike RB 8827 262 61 for for IN 8827 262 62 the the DT 8827 262 63 Church Church NNP 8827 262 64 and and CC 8827 262 65 the the DT 8827 262 66 Apostle apostle NN 8827 262 67 . . . 8827 263 1 Hence hence RB 8827 263 2 , , , 8827 263 3 instead instead RB 8827 263 4 of of IN 8827 263 5 going go VBG 8827 263 6 , , , 8827 263 7 he -PRON- PRP 8827 263 8 writes write VBZ 8827 263 9 a a DT 8827 263 10 " " `` 8827 263 11 painful painful JJ 8827 263 12 " " '' 8827 263 13 letter letter NN 8827 263 14 and and CC 8827 263 15 sends send VBZ 8827 263 16 it -PRON- PRP 8827 263 17 by by IN 8827 263 18 the the DT 8827 263 19 same same JJ 8827 263 20 messenger messenger NN 8827 263 21 , , , 8827 263 22 proceeding proceed VBG 8827 263 23 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 263 24 to to IN 8827 263 25 Troas Troas NNP 8827 263 26 and and CC 8827 263 27 thence thence NN 8827 263 28 to to IN 8827 263 29 Macedonia Macedonia NNP 8827 263 30 , , , 8827 263 31 where where WRB 8827 263 32 , , , 8827 263 33 in in IN 8827 263 34 great great JJ 8827 263 35 tension tension NN 8827 263 36 of of IN 8827 263 37 spirit spirit NN 8827 263 38 , , , 8827 263 39 he -PRON- PRP 8827 263 40 awaits await VBZ 8827 263 41 the the DT 8827 263 42 return return NN 8827 263 43 of of IN 8827 263 44 Titus Titus NNP 8827 263 45 . . . 8827 264 1 At at IN 8827 264 2 last last JJ 8827 264 3 there there EX 8827 264 4 comes come VBZ 8827 264 5 a a DT 8827 264 6 reassuring reassuring JJ 8827 264 7 account account NN 8827 264 8 , , , 8827 264 9 the the DT 8827 264 10 relief relief NN 8827 264 11 derived derive VBN 8827 264 12 from from IN 8827 264 13 which which WDT 8827 264 14 is be VBZ 8827 264 15 so so RB 8827 264 16 great great JJ 8827 264 17 that that IN 8827 264 18 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 264 19 second second JJ 8827 264 20 Letter Letter NNP 8827 264 21 is be VBZ 8827 264 22 written write VBN 8827 264 23 , , , 8827 264 24 with with IN 8827 264 25 the the DT 8827 264 26 double double JJ 8827 264 27 purpose purpose NN 8827 264 28 of of IN 8827 264 29 comforting comfort VBG 8827 264 30 those those DT 8827 264 31 who who WP 8827 264 32 had have VBD 8827 264 33 been be VBN 8827 264 34 so so RB 8827 264 35 sharply sharply RB 8827 264 36 rebuked rebuke VBN 8827 264 37 and and CC 8827 264 38 of of IN 8827 264 39 preventing prevent VBG 8827 264 40 the the DT 8827 264 41 recurrence recurrence NN 8827 264 42 of of IN 8827 264 43 the the DT 8827 264 44 evils evil NNS 8827 264 45 which which WDT 8827 264 46 had have VBD 8827 264 47 called call VBN 8827 264 48 forth forth RB 8827 264 49 the the DT 8827 264 50 remonstrance remonstrance NN 8827 264 51 . . . 8827 265 1 In in IN 8827 265 2 this this DT 8827 265 3 way way NN 8827 265 4 both both CC 8827 265 5 the the DT 8827 265 6 tenderness tenderness NN 8827 265 7 and and CC 8827 265 8 the the DT 8827 265 9 severity severity NN 8827 265 10 of of IN 8827 265 11 the the DT 8827 265 12 present present JJ 8827 265 13 Letter letter NN 8827 265 14 may may MD 8827 265 15 be be VB 8827 265 16 explained explain VBN 8827 265 17 . . . 8827 266 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 266 2 's 's POS 8827 266 3 Letter letter NN 8827 266 4 to to IN 8827 266 5 the the DT 8827 266 6 Galatians Galatians NNPS 8827 266 7 There there EX 8827 266 8 is be VBZ 8827 266 9 no no DT 8827 266 10 question question NN 8827 266 11 as as IN 8827 266 12 to to IN 8827 266 13 the the DT 8827 266 14 genuineness genuineness NN 8827 266 15 of of IN 8827 266 16 this this DT 8827 266 17 Pauline Pauline NNP 8827 266 18 Letter Letter NNP 8827 266 19 , , , 8827 266 20 but but CC 8827 266 21 unlike unlike IN 8827 266 22 most most JJS 8827 266 23 other other JJ 8827 266 24 writings writing NNS 8827 266 25 of of IN 8827 266 26 the the DT 8827 266 27 Apostle apostle NN 8827 266 28 it -PRON- PRP 8827 266 29 was be VBD 8827 266 30 addressed address VBN 8827 266 31 to to TO 8827 266 32 " " `` 8827 266 33 Churches church NNS 8827 266 34 " " '' 8827 266 35 rather rather RB 8827 266 36 than than IN 8827 266 37 to to IN 8827 266 38 a a DT 8827 266 39 single single JJ 8827 266 40 community community NN 8827 266 41 . . . 8827 267 1 Formerly formerly RB 8827 267 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 267 3 was be VBD 8827 267 4 not not RB 8827 267 5 easy easy JJ 8827 267 6 to to TO 8827 267 7 decide decide VB 8827 267 8 the the DT 8827 267 9 precise precise JJ 8827 267 10 meaning meaning NN 8827 267 11 of of IN 8827 267 12 the the DT 8827 267 13 term term NN 8827 267 14 " " `` 8827 267 15 Galatia Galatia NNP 8827 267 16 . . . 8827 267 17 " " '' 8827 268 1 Opinions opinion NNS 8827 268 2 differed differ VBN 8827 268 3 on on IN 8827 268 4 the the DT 8827 268 5 subject subject NN 8827 268 6 . . . 8827 269 1 The the DT 8827 269 2 " " `` 8827 269 3 North north JJ 8827 269 4 Galatian galatian JJ 8827 269 5 theory theory NN 8827 269 6 , , , 8827 269 7 " " '' 8827 269 8 contended contend VBN 8827 269 9 for for IN 8827 269 10 by by IN 8827 269 11 some some DT 8827 269 12 German german JJ 8827 269 13 scholars scholar NNS 8827 269 14 , , , 8827 269 15 maintained maintain VBD 8827 269 16 that that IN 8827 269 17 the the DT 8827 269 18 Letter Letter NNP 8827 269 19 was be VBD 8827 269 20 addressed address VBN 8827 269 21 to to IN 8827 269 22 the the DT 8827 269 23 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 269 24 of of IN 8827 269 25 Ancyra Ancyra NNP 8827 269 26 , , , 8827 269 27 Tavium Tavium NNP 8827 269 28 , , , 8827 269 29 Pessinus Pessinus NNP 8827 269 30 and and CC 8827 269 31 possibly possibly RB 8827 269 32 to to IN 8827 269 33 those those DT 8827 269 34 in in IN 8827 269 35 other other JJ 8827 269 36 cities city NNS 8827 269 37 . . . 8827 270 1 The the DT 8827 270 2 " " `` 8827 270 3 South south JJ 8827 270 4 Galatian galatian JJ 8827 270 5 theory theory NN 8827 270 6 , , , 8827 270 7 " " '' 8827 270 8 which which WDT 8827 270 9 now now RB 8827 270 10 holds hold VBZ 8827 270 11 the the DT 8827 270 12 field field NN 8827 270 13 in in IN 8827 270 14 English English NNP 8827 270 15 - - HYPH 8827 270 16 speaking speak VBG 8827 270 17 countries country NNS 8827 270 18 , , , 8827 270 19 is be VBZ 8827 270 20 to to IN 8827 270 21 the the DT 8827 270 22 effect effect NN 8827 270 23 that that WDT 8827 270 24 the the DT 8827 270 25 congregations congregation NNS 8827 270 26 intended intend VBN 8827 270 27 were be VBD 8827 270 28 those those DT 8827 270 29 of of IN 8827 270 30 Pisidian Pisidian NNP 8827 270 31 Antioch Antioch NNP 8827 270 32 , , , 8827 270 33 Iconium Iconium NNP 8827 270 34 , , , 8827 270 35 Derbe Derbe NNP 8827 270 36 and and CC 8827 270 37 Lystra Lystra NNP 8827 270 38 ; ; : 8827 270 39 and and CC 8827 270 40 this this DT 8827 270 41 is be VBZ 8827 270 42 strongly strongly RB 8827 270 43 supported support VBN 8827 270 44 by by IN 8827 270 45 the the DT 8827 270 46 unique unique JJ 8827 270 47 resemblance resemblance NN 8827 270 48 between between IN 8827 270 49 this this DT 8827 270 50 Letter Letter NNP 8827 270 51 and and CC 8827 270 52 Paul Paul NNP 8827 270 53 's 's POS 8827 270 54 sermon sermon JJ 8827 270 55 in in IN 8827 270 56 Pisidian Pisidian NNP 8827 270 57 Antioch Antioch NNP 8827 270 58 ( ( -LRB- 8827 270 59 Ac Ac NNP 8827 270 60 13:14 13:14 CD 8827 270 61 - - SYM 8827 270 62 41 41 CD 8827 270 63 ) ) -RRB- 8827 270 64 . . . 8827 271 1 In in IN 8827 271 2 any any DT 8827 271 3 case case NN 8827 271 4 the the DT 8827 271 5 population population NN 8827 271 6 was be VBD 8827 271 7 very very RB 8827 271 8 mixed mixed JJ 8827 271 9 , , , 8827 271 10 consisting consist VBG 8827 271 11 of of IN 8827 271 12 Phrygians Phrygians NNPS 8827 271 13 , , , 8827 271 14 Greeks Greeks NNPS 8827 271 15 , , , 8827 271 16 Romans Romans NNPS 8827 271 17 , , , 8827 271 18 Gauls Gauls NNPS 8827 271 19 and and CC 8827 271 20 Jews Jews NNPS 8827 271 21 . . . 8827 272 1 The the DT 8827 272 2 date date NN 8827 272 3 of of IN 8827 272 4 the the DT 8827 272 5 Letter Letter NNP 8827 272 6 can can MD 8827 272 7 not not RB 8827 272 8 be be VB 8827 272 9 exactly exactly RB 8827 272 10 fixed fix VBN 8827 272 11 . . . 8827 273 1 The the DT 8827 273 2 periods period NNS 8827 273 3 assigned assign VBN 8827 273 4 by by IN 8827 273 5 recent recent JJ 8827 273 6 scholarship scholarship NN 8827 273 7 vary vary VBP 8827 273 8 from from IN 8827 273 9 46 46 CD 8827 273 10 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 273 11 to to IN 8827 273 12 58 58 CD 8827 273 13 A.D. a.d. NN 8827 273 14 , , , 8827 273 15 but but CC 8827 273 16 the the DT 8827 273 17 medium medium JJ 8827 273 18 estimate estimate NN 8827 273 19 of of IN 8827 273 20 53 53 CD 8827 273 21 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 273 22 , , , 8827 273 23 adopted adopt VBN 8827 273 24 by by IN 8827 273 25 Harnack Harnack NNP 8827 273 26 and and CC 8827 273 27 Ramsay Ramsay NNP 8827 273 28 , , , 8827 273 29 satisfies satisfy VBZ 8827 273 30 all all PDT 8827 273 31 the the DT 8827 273 32 requirements requirement NNS 8827 273 33 of of IN 8827 273 34 the the DT 8827 273 35 case case NN 8827 273 36 . . . 8827 274 1 The the DT 8827 274 2 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 274 3 certainly certainly RB 8827 274 4 visited visit VBD 8827 274 5 Galatia Galatia NNP 8827 274 6 during during IN 8827 274 7 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 274 8 second second JJ 8827 274 9 missionary missionary JJ 8827 274 10 tour tour NN 8827 274 11 , , , 8827 274 12 perhaps perhaps RB 8827 274 13 about about RB 8827 274 14 51 51 CD 8827 274 15 A. a. NN 8827 274 16 D. D. NNP 8827 274 17 , , , 8827 274 18 and and CC 8827 274 19 , , , 8827 274 20 although although IN 8827 274 21 suffering suffer VBG 8827 274 22 from from IN 8827 274 23 illness illness NN 8827 274 24 , , , 8827 274 25 was be VBD 8827 274 26 received receive VBN 8827 274 27 with with IN 8827 274 28 enthusiasm enthusiasm NN 8827 274 29 . . . 8827 275 1 After after IN 8827 275 2 a a DT 8827 275 3 short short JJ 8827 275 4 stay stay NN 8827 275 5 he -PRON- PRP 8827 275 6 departed depart VBD 8827 275 7 cherishing cherish VBG 8827 275 8 a a DT 8827 275 9 joyful joyful JJ 8827 275 10 confidence confidence NN 8827 275 11 as as IN 8827 275 12 to to IN 8827 275 13 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 275 14 converts convert NNS 8827 275 15 there there RB 8827 275 16 . . . 8827 276 1 But but CC 8827 276 2 when when WRB 8827 276 3 , , , 8827 276 4 less less JJR 8827 276 5 than than IN 8827 276 6 three three CD 8827 276 7 years year NNS 8827 276 8 afterwards afterwards RB 8827 276 9 , , , 8827 276 10 he -PRON- PRP 8827 276 11 came come VBD 8827 276 12 again again RB 8827 276 13 , , , 8827 276 14 he -PRON- PRP 8827 276 15 found find VBD 8827 276 16 that that IN 8827 276 17 the the DT 8827 276 18 leaven leaven NN 8827 276 19 of of IN 8827 276 20 Judaism Judaism NNP 8827 276 21 had have VBD 8827 276 22 produced produce VBN 8827 276 23 a a DT 8827 276 24 definite definite JJ 8827 276 25 apostasy apostasy NN 8827 276 26 , , , 8827 276 27 insomuch insomuch JJ 8827 276 28 that that IN 8827 276 29 both both CC 8827 276 30 the the DT 8827 276 31 freedom freedom NN 8827 276 32 of of IN 8827 276 33 individual individual JJ 8827 276 34 believers believer NNS 8827 276 35 and and CC 8827 276 36 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 276 37 own own JJ 8827 276 38 Apostolic Apostolic NNP 8827 276 39 authority authority NN 8827 276 40 were be VBD 8827 276 41 in in IN 8827 276 42 danger danger NN 8827 276 43 . . . 8827 277 1 Even even RB 8827 277 2 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 277 3 personal personal JJ 8827 277 4 presence presence NN 8827 277 5 ( ( -LRB- 8827 277 6 Ac Ac NNP 8827 277 7 18:23 18:23 CD 8827 277 8 ) ) -RRB- 8827 277 9 did do VBD 8827 277 10 not not RB 8827 277 11 end end VB 8827 277 12 the the DT 8827 277 13 difficulty difficulty NN 8827 277 14 . . . 8827 278 1 Hence hence RB 8827 278 2 , , , 8827 278 3 possibly possibly RB 8827 278 4 during during IN 8827 278 5 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 278 6 journey journey NN 8827 278 7 between between IN 8827 278 8 Macedonia Macedonia NNP 8827 278 9 and and CC 8827 278 10 Achaia Achaia NNP 8827 278 11 , , , 8827 278 12 he -PRON- PRP 8827 278 13 sent send VBD 8827 278 14 this this DT 8827 278 15 Letter letter NN 8827 278 16 . . . 8827 279 1 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 279 2 rugged rugged JJ 8827 279 3 and and CC 8827 279 4 incoherent incoherent JJ 8827 279 5 style style NN 8827 279 6 shows show VBZ 8827 279 7 that that IN 8827 279 8 it -PRON- PRP 8827 279 9 was be VBD 8827 279 10 dictated dictate VBN 8827 279 11 under under IN 8827 279 12 great great JJ 8827 279 13 stress stress NN 8827 279 14 of of IN 8827 279 15 feeling feeling NN 8827 279 16 , , , 8827 279 17 and and CC 8827 279 18 the the DT 8827 279 19 doctrine doctrine NN 8827 279 20 of of IN 8827 279 21 justification justification NN 8827 279 22 by by IN 8827 279 23 faith faith NN 8827 279 24 is be VBZ 8827 279 25 stated state VBN 8827 279 26 more more RBR 8827 279 27 emphatically emphatically RB 8827 279 28 than than IN 8827 279 29 in in IN 8827 279 30 any any DT 8827 279 31 other other JJ 8827 279 32 of of IN 8827 279 33 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 279 34 writings writing NNS 8827 279 35 . . . 8827 280 1 But but CC 8827 280 2 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 280 3 earnest earnest JJ 8827 280 4 insistence insistence NN 8827 280 5 upon upon IN 8827 280 6 the the DT 8827 280 7 " " `` 8827 280 8 fruit fruit NN 8827 280 9 borne bear VBN 8827 280 10 by by IN 8827 280 11 the the DT 8827 280 12 Spirit Spirit NNP 8827 280 13 " " '' 8827 280 14 proves prove VBZ 8827 280 15 that that IN 8827 280 16 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 280 17 ideal ideal NN 8827 280 18 of of IN 8827 280 19 practical practical JJ 8827 280 20 holiness holiness NN 8827 280 21 was be VBD 8827 280 22 rather rather RB 8827 280 23 strengthened strengthen VBN 8827 280 24 than than IN 8827 280 25 impaired impair VBN 8827 280 26 by by IN 8827 280 27 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 280 28 plea plea NN 8827 280 29 for for IN 8827 280 30 Faith Faith NNP 8827 280 31 as as IN 8827 280 32 the the DT 8827 280 33 mainspring mainspring NN 8827 280 34 of of IN 8827 280 35 Christian christian JJ 8827 280 36 life life NN 8827 280 37 . . . 8827 281 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 281 2 's 's POS 8827 281 3 Letter letter NN 8827 281 4 to to IN 8827 281 5 the the DT 8827 281 6 Ephesians Ephesians NNPS 8827 281 7 This this DT 8827 281 8 appears appear VBZ 8827 281 9 to to TO 8827 281 10 have have VB 8827 281 11 been be VBN 8827 281 12 a a DT 8827 281 13 kind kind NN 8827 281 14 of of IN 8827 281 15 circular circular JJ 8827 281 16 Letter Letter NNP 8827 281 17 to to IN 8827 281 18 the the DT 8827 281 19 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 281 20 in in IN 8827 281 21 Roman Roman NNP 8827 281 22 Asia Asia NNP 8827 281 23 , , , 8827 281 24 and and CC 8827 281 25 was be VBD 8827 281 26 not not RB 8827 281 27 addressed address VBN 8827 281 28 exclusively exclusively RB 8827 281 29 to to IN 8827 281 30 the the DT 8827 281 31 Church Church NNP 8827 281 32 in in IN 8827 281 33 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 281 34 . . . 8827 282 1 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 282 2 was be VBD 8827 282 3 a a DT 8827 282 4 well well RB 8827 282 5 - - HYPH 8827 282 6 known know VBN 8827 282 7 seaport seaport NN 8827 282 8 and and CC 8827 282 9 the the DT 8827 282 10 principal principal JJ 8827 282 11 city city NN 8827 282 12 in in IN 8827 282 13 Roman Roman NNP 8827 282 14 Asia Asia NNP 8827 282 15 . . . 8827 283 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 283 2 was be VBD 8827 283 3 famous famous JJ 8827 283 4 alike alike RB 8827 283 5 for for IN 8827 283 6 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 283 7 wonderful wonderful JJ 8827 283 8 temple temple NN 8827 283 9 , , , 8827 283 10 containing contain VBG 8827 283 11 the the DT 8827 283 12 shrine shrine NN 8827 283 13 of of IN 8827 283 14 Artemis Artemis NNP 8827 283 15 , , , 8827 283 16 and and CC 8827 283 17 for for IN 8827 283 18 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 283 19 vast vast JJ 8827 283 20 theatre theatre NN 8827 283 21 , , , 8827 283 22 which which WDT 8827 283 23 was be VBD 8827 283 24 capable capable JJ 8827 283 25 of of IN 8827 283 26 accommodating accommodate VBG 8827 283 27 50,000 50,000 CD 8827 283 28 persons person NNS 8827 283 29 . . . 8827 284 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 284 2 was be VBD 8827 284 3 forbidden forbid VBN 8827 284 4 at at IN 8827 284 5 first first RB 8827 284 6 to to TO 8827 284 7 preach preach VB 8827 284 8 in in IN 8827 284 9 Roman roman JJ 8827 284 10 Asia Asia NNP 8827 284 11 ( ( -LRB- 8827 284 12 Ac Ac NNP 8827 284 13 16:6 16:6 CD 8827 284 14 ) ) -RRB- 8827 284 15 , , , 8827 284 16 but but CC 8827 284 17 he -PRON- PRP 8827 284 18 afterwards afterwards RB 8827 284 19 visited visit VBD 8827 284 20 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 284 21 in in IN 8827 284 22 company company NN 8827 284 23 with with IN 8827 284 24 Priscilla Priscilla NNP 8827 284 25 and and CC 8827 284 26 Aquila Aquila NNP 8827 284 27 ( ( -LRB- 8827 284 28 Ac Ac NNP 8827 284 29 18:19 18:19 CD 8827 284 30 ) ) -RRB- 8827 284 31 . . . 8827 285 1 About about RB 8827 285 2 three three CD 8827 285 3 years year NNS 8827 285 4 later later RB 8827 285 5 ( ( -LRB- 8827 285 6 Ac Ac NNP 8827 285 7 19:1 19:1 CD 8827 285 8 ) ) -RRB- 8827 285 9 he -PRON- PRP 8827 285 10 came come VBD 8827 285 11 again again RB 8827 285 12 and and CC 8827 285 13 remained remain VBD 8827 285 14 for for IN 8827 285 15 some some DT 8827 285 16 time time NN 8827 285 17 -- -- : 8827 285 18 probably probably RB 8827 285 19 from from IN 8827 285 20 54 54 CD 8827 285 21 to to TO 8827 285 22 57 57 CD 8827 285 23 A. a. NN 8827 285 24 D.--preaching d.--preaching NN 8827 285 25 and and CC 8827 285 26 arguing argue VBG 8827 285 27 in in IN 8827 285 28 the the DT 8827 285 29 school school NN 8827 285 30 of of IN 8827 285 31 Tyrannus Tyrannus NNP 8827 285 32 , , , 8827 285 33 until until IN 8827 285 34 driven drive VBN 8827 285 35 away away RB 8827 285 36 through through IN 8827 285 37 the the DT 8827 285 38 tumult tumult NN 8827 285 39 raised raise VBN 8827 285 40 by by IN 8827 285 41 Demetrius Demetrius NNP 8827 285 42 . . . 8827 286 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 286 2 then then RB 8827 286 3 went go VBD 8827 286 4 to to IN 8827 286 5 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 286 6 , , , 8827 286 7 by by IN 8827 286 8 way way NN 8827 286 9 of of IN 8827 286 10 Miletus Miletus NNP 8827 286 11 , , , 8827 286 12 but but CC 8827 286 13 was be VBD 8827 286 14 arrested arrest VBN 8827 286 15 in in IN 8827 286 16 the the DT 8827 286 17 uproar uproar NN 8827 286 18 created create VBN 8827 286 19 by by IN 8827 286 20 the the DT 8827 286 21 Jews Jews NNPS 8827 286 22 and and CC 8827 286 23 was be VBD 8827 286 24 taken take VBN 8827 286 25 first first RB 8827 286 26 to to IN 8827 286 27 Caesarea Caesarea NNP 8827 286 28 ( ( -LRB- 8827 286 29 Ac Ac NNP 8827 286 30 23:23 23:23 CD 8827 286 31 ) ) -RRB- 8827 286 32 , , , 8827 286 33 and and CC 8827 286 34 thence thence NN 8827 286 35 to to IN 8827 286 36 Rome Rome NNP 8827 286 37 ( ( -LRB- 8827 286 38 Ac Ac NNP 8827 286 39 28:16 28:16 CD 8827 286 40 ) ) -RRB- 8827 286 41 . . . 8827 287 1 This this DT 8827 287 2 was be VBD 8827 287 3 probably probably RB 8827 287 4 in in IN 8827 287 5 the the DT 8827 287 6 spring spring NN 8827 287 7 of of IN 8827 287 8 61 61 CD 8827 287 9 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 287 10 Late late RB 8827 287 11 in in IN 8827 287 12 62 62 CD 8827 287 13 or or CC 8827 287 14 early early RB 8827 287 15 in in IN 8827 287 16 63 63 CD 8827 287 17 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 287 18 , , , 8827 287 19 this this DT 8827 287 20 Letter letter NN 8827 287 21 was be VBD 8827 287 22 written write VBN 8827 287 23 , , , 8827 287 24 together together RB 8827 287 25 with with IN 8827 287 26 the the DT 8827 287 27 companion companion NN 8827 287 28 Letters letter NNS 8827 287 29 to to IN 8827 287 30 the the DT 8827 287 31 Colossians Colossians NNPS 8827 287 32 and and CC 8827 287 33 Philemon Philemon NNP 8827 287 34 . . . 8827 288 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 288 2 's 's POS 8827 288 3 Letter letter NN 8827 288 4 to to IN 8827 288 5 the the DT 8827 288 6 Philippians Philippians NNP 8827 288 7 This this DT 8827 288 8 Letter Letter NNP 8827 288 9 was be VBD 8827 288 10 written write VBN 8827 288 11 shortly shortly RB 8827 288 12 before before IN 8827 288 13 that that DT 8827 288 14 to to IN 8827 288 15 the the DT 8827 288 16 Ephesians Ephesians NNPS 8827 288 17 , , , 8827 288 18 probably probably RB 8827 288 19 late late RB 8827 288 20 in in IN 8827 288 21 61 61 CD 8827 288 22 or or CC 8827 288 23 early early RB 8827 288 24 in in IN 8827 288 25 62 62 CD 8827 288 26 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 288 27 Epaphroditus Epaphroditus NNP 8827 288 28 had have VBD 8827 288 29 been be VBN 8827 288 30 sent send VBN 8827 288 31 to to IN 8827 288 32 Rome Rome NNP 8827 288 33 to to TO 8827 288 34 assure assure VB 8827 288 35 the the DT 8827 288 36 Apostle apostle NN 8827 288 37 , , , 8827 288 38 in in IN 8827 288 39 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 288 40 imprisonment imprisonment NN 8827 288 41 , , , 8827 288 42 of of IN 8827 288 43 the the DT 8827 288 44 tender tender NN 8827 288 45 and and CC 8827 288 46 practical practical JJ 8827 288 47 sympathy sympathy NN 8827 288 48 of of IN 8827 288 49 the the DT 8827 288 50 Philippian philippian JJ 8827 288 51 disciples disciple NNS 8827 288 52 ( ( -LRB- 8827 288 53 Php Php NNP 8827 288 54 2:25 2:25 CD 8827 288 55 ; ; : 8827 288 56 4:15,16 4:15,16 CD 8827 288 57 ) ) -RRB- 8827 288 58 . . . 8827 289 1 The the DT 8827 289 2 messenger messenger NN 8827 289 3 , , , 8827 289 4 however however RB 8827 289 5 , , , 8827 289 6 fell fall VBD 8827 289 7 ill ill RB 8827 289 8 upon upon IN 8827 289 9 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 289 10 arrival arrival NN 8827 289 11 , , , 8827 289 12 and and CC 8827 289 13 only only RB 8827 289 14 on on IN 8827 289 15 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 289 16 recovery recovery NN 8827 289 17 could could MD 8827 289 18 Paul Paul NNP 8827 289 19 , , , 8827 289 20 as as IN 8827 289 21 in in IN 8827 289 22 this this DT 8827 289 23 Letter Letter NNP 8827 289 24 , , , 8827 289 25 express express VB 8827 289 26 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 289 27 appreciation appreciation NN 8827 289 28 of of IN 8827 289 29 the the DT 8827 289 30 thoughtful thoughtful JJ 8827 289 31 love love NN 8827 289 32 of of IN 8827 289 33 the the DT 8827 289 34 Philippians Philippians NNPS 8827 289 35 . . . 8827 290 1 The the DT 8827 290 2 Apostle apostle NN 8827 290 3 appears appear VBZ 8827 290 4 to to TO 8827 290 5 have have VB 8827 290 6 visited visit VBN 8827 290 7 the the DT 8827 290 8 city city NN 8827 290 9 three three CD 8827 290 10 times time NNS 8827 290 11 . . . 8827 291 1 In in IN 8827 291 2 52 52 CD 8827 291 3 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 291 4 it -PRON- PRP 8827 291 5 was be VBD 8827 291 6 the the DT 8827 291 7 place place NN 8827 291 8 of of IN 8827 291 9 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 291 10 first first JJ 8827 291 11 preaching preaching NN 8827 291 12 in in IN 8827 291 13 Europe Europe NNP 8827 291 14 ( ( -LRB- 8827 291 15 Ac Ac NNP 8827 291 16 16:12 16:12 CD 8827 291 17 ) ) -RRB- 8827 291 18 ; ; : 8827 291 19 but but CC 8827 291 20 he -PRON- PRP 8827 291 21 came come VBD 8827 291 22 again again RB 8827 291 23 in in IN 8827 291 24 57 57 CD 8827 291 25 and and CC 8827 291 26 in in IN 8827 291 27 58 58 CD 8827 291 28 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 291 29 ( ( -LRB- 8827 291 30 Ac Ac NNP 8827 291 31 20:2,6 20:2,6 CD 8827 291 32 ) ) -RRB- 8827 291 33 , , , 8827 291 34 on on IN 8827 291 35 the the DT 8827 291 36 last last JJ 8827 291 37 occasion occasion NN 8827 291 38 spending spend VBG 8827 291 39 the the DT 8827 291 40 Passover Passover NNP 8827 291 41 season season NN 8827 291 42 there there RB 8827 291 43 . . . 8827 292 1 Two two CD 8827 292 2 special special JJ 8827 292 3 traits trait NNS 8827 292 4 in in IN 8827 292 5 the the DT 8827 292 6 Macedonian macedonian JJ 8827 292 7 character character NN 8827 292 8 are be VBP 8827 292 9 recognized recognize VBN 8827 292 10 by by IN 8827 292 11 the the DT 8827 292 12 Apostle apostle NN 8827 292 13 in in IN 8827 292 14 this this DT 8827 292 15 Letter letter NN 8827 292 16 ; ; : 8827 292 17 the the DT 8827 292 18 position position NN 8827 292 19 and and CC 8827 292 20 influence influence NN 8827 292 21 of of IN 8827 292 22 women woman NNS 8827 292 23 , , , 8827 292 24 and and CC 8827 292 25 the the DT 8827 292 26 financial financial JJ 8827 292 27 liberality liberality NN 8827 292 28 of of IN 8827 292 29 the the DT 8827 292 30 Philippians Philippians NNPS 8827 292 31 . . . 8827 293 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 293 2 is be VBZ 8827 293 3 remarkable remarkable JJ 8827 293 4 that that IN 8827 293 5 a a DT 8827 293 6 Church Church NNP 8827 293 7 displaying display VBG 8827 293 8 such such JJ 8827 293 9 characteristics characteristic NNS 8827 293 10 , , , 8827 293 11 and and CC 8827 293 12 existing exist VBG 8827 293 13 in in IN 8827 293 14 a a DT 8827 293 15 Roman roman JJ 8827 293 16 " " `` 8827 293 17 colonia colonia NN 8827 293 18 , , , 8827 293 19 " " '' 8827 293 20 should should MD 8827 293 21 have have VB 8827 293 22 lived live VBN 8827 293 23 , , , 8827 293 24 as as IN 8827 293 25 this this DT 8827 293 26 one one NN 8827 293 27 did do VBD 8827 293 28 , , , 8827 293 29 " " `` 8827 293 30 without without IN 8827 293 31 a a DT 8827 293 32 history history NN 8827 293 33 , , , 8827 293 34 and and CC 8827 293 35 have have VBP 8827 293 36 perished perish VBN 8827 293 37 without without IN 8827 293 38 a a DT 8827 293 39 memorial memorial NN 8827 293 40 . . . 8827 293 41 " " '' 8827 294 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 294 2 's 's POS 8827 294 3 Letter letter NN 8827 294 4 to to IN 8827 294 5 the the DT 8827 294 6 Colossians Colossians NNPS 8827 294 7 This this DT 8827 294 8 Letter letter NN 8827 294 9 belongs belong VBZ 8827 294 10 to to IN 8827 294 11 the the DT 8827 294 12 same same JJ 8827 294 13 group group NN 8827 294 14 as as IN 8827 294 15 those those DT 8827 294 16 to to IN 8827 294 17 the the DT 8827 294 18 Ephesians Ephesians NNPS 8827 294 19 and and CC 8827 294 20 Philemon Philemon NNP 8827 294 21 , , , 8827 294 22 and and CC 8827 294 23 was be VBD 8827 294 24 probably probably RB 8827 294 25 written write VBN 8827 294 26 from from IN 8827 294 27 Rome Rome NNP 8827 294 28 about about RB 8827 294 29 63 63 CD 8827 294 30 A. a. NN 8827 294 31 D. D. NNP 8827 294 32 Colossae Colossae NNP 8827 294 33 was be VBD 8827 294 34 a a DT 8827 294 35 town town NN 8827 294 36 in in IN 8827 294 37 Phrygia Phrygia NNP 8827 294 38 ( ( -LRB- 8827 294 39 Roman Roman NNP 8827 294 40 Asia Asia NNP 8827 294 41 ) ) -RRB- 8827 294 42 , , , 8827 294 43 on on IN 8827 294 44 the the DT 8827 294 45 river river NN 8827 294 46 Lycus Lycus NNP 8827 294 47 , , , 8827 294 48 and and CC 8827 294 49 was be VBD 8827 294 50 destroyed destroy VBN 8827 294 51 by by IN 8827 294 52 an an DT 8827 294 53 earthquake earthquake NN 8827 294 54 in in IN 8827 294 55 the the DT 8827 294 56 seventh seventh JJ 8827 294 57 year year NN 8827 294 58 of of IN 8827 294 59 Nero Nero NNP 8827 294 60 's 's POS 8827 294 61 reign reign NN 8827 294 62 . . . 8827 295 1 The the DT 8827 295 2 Church Church NNP 8827 295 3 there there RB 8827 295 4 was be VBD 8827 295 5 not not RB 8827 295 6 founded found VBN 8827 295 7 by by IN 8827 295 8 Paul Paul NNP 8827 295 9 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 295 10 ( ( -LRB- 8827 295 11 Col Col NNP 8827 295 12 2:1 2:1 CD 8827 295 13 ) ) -RRB- 8827 295 14 , , , 8827 295 15 but but CC 8827 295 16 by by IN 8827 295 17 Epaphras Epaphras NNP 8827 295 18 ( ( -LRB- 8827 295 19 Col Col NNP 8827 295 20 1:7 1:7 CD 8827 295 21 ; ; : 8827 295 22 4:12 4:12 CD 8827 295 23 ) ) -RRB- 8827 295 24 , , , 8827 295 25 and and CC 8827 295 26 this this DT 8827 295 27 Letter letter NN 8827 295 28 arose arise VBD 8827 295 29 out out IN 8827 295 30 of of IN 8827 295 31 a a DT 8827 295 32 visit visit NN 8827 295 33 which which WDT 8827 295 34 Epaphras Epaphras NNP 8827 295 35 paid pay VBD 8827 295 36 to to IN 8827 295 37 the the DT 8827 295 38 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 295 39 , , , 8827 295 40 for for IN 8827 295 41 the the DT 8827 295 42 purpose purpose NN 8827 295 43 of of IN 8827 295 44 discussing discuss VBG 8827 295 45 with with IN 8827 295 46 him -PRON- PRP 8827 295 47 the the DT 8827 295 48 development development NN 8827 295 49 , , , 8827 295 50 at at IN 8827 295 51 Colossae Colossae NNP 8827 295 52 , , , 8827 295 53 of of IN 8827 295 54 certain certain JJ 8827 295 55 strange strange JJ 8827 295 56 doctrines doctrine NNS 8827 295 57 which which WDT 8827 295 58 may may MD 8827 295 59 possibly possibly RB 8827 295 60 have have VB 8827 295 61 been be VBN 8827 295 62 a a DT 8827 295 63 kind kind NN 8827 295 64 of of IN 8827 295 65 early early JJ 8827 295 66 Gnosticism Gnosticism NNP 8827 295 67 . . . 8827 296 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 296 2 here here RB 8827 296 3 writes write VBZ 8827 296 4 to to TO 8827 296 5 support support VB 8827 296 6 the the DT 8827 296 7 authority authority NN 8827 296 8 and and CC 8827 296 9 confirm confirm VB 8827 296 10 the the DT 8827 296 11 teaching teaching NN 8827 296 12 of of IN 8827 296 13 Epaphras Epaphras NNP 8827 296 14 . . . 8827 297 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 297 2 's 's POS 8827 297 3 First First NNP 8827 297 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 297 5 to to IN 8827 297 6 the the DT 8827 297 7 Thessalonians Thessalonians NNPS 8827 297 8 During during IN 8827 297 9 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 297 10 second second JJ 8827 297 11 missionary missionary JJ 8827 297 12 tour tour NN 8827 297 13 ( ( -LRB- 8827 297 14 Ac Ac NNP 8827 297 15 17 17 CD 8827 297 16 ) ) -RRB- 8827 297 17 , , , 8827 297 18 Paul Paul NNP 8827 297 19 came come VBD 8827 297 20 to to IN 8827 297 21 Thessalonica Thessalonica NNP 8827 297 22 and and CC 8827 297 23 preached preach VBD 8827 297 24 the the DT 8827 297 25 Good Good NNP 8827 297 26 News News NNP 8827 297 27 there there RB 8827 297 28 with with IN 8827 297 29 no no DT 8827 297 30 little little JJ 8827 297 31 success success NN 8827 297 32 . . . 8827 298 1 The the DT 8827 298 2 city city NN 8827 298 3 -- -- : 8827 298 4 which which WDT 8827 298 5 had have VBD 8827 298 6 had have VBN 8827 298 7 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 298 8 name name NN 8827 298 9 given give VBN 8827 298 10 it -PRON- PRP 8827 298 11 by by IN 8827 298 12 Cassander Cassander NNP 8827 298 13 , , , 8827 298 14 after after IN 8827 298 15 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 298 16 wife wife NN 8827 298 17 , , , 8827 298 18 the the DT 8827 298 19 sister sister NN 8827 298 20 of of IN 8827 298 21 Alexander Alexander NNP 8827 298 22 the the DT 8827 298 23 Great great JJ 8827 298 24 -- -- : 8827 298 25 was be VBD 8827 298 26 the the DT 8827 298 27 most most RBS 8827 298 28 populous populous JJ 8827 298 29 in in IN 8827 298 30 Macedonia Macedonia NNP 8827 298 31 , , , 8827 298 32 besides besides IN 8827 298 33 being be VBG 8827 298 34 a a DT 8827 298 35 " " `` 8827 298 36 free free JJ 8827 298 37 city city NN 8827 298 38 " " '' 8827 298 39 and and CC 8827 298 40 the the DT 8827 298 41 seat seat NN 8827 298 42 of of IN 8827 298 43 the the DT 8827 298 44 Roman roman JJ 8827 298 45 pro pro JJ 8827 298 46 - - JJ 8827 298 47 consular consular JJ 8827 298 48 administration administration NN 8827 298 49 . . . 8827 299 1 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 299 2 modern modern JJ 8827 299 3 name name NN 8827 299 4 is be VBZ 8827 299 5 Saloniki Saloniki NNP 8827 299 6 . . . 8827 300 1 Very very RB 8827 300 2 soon soon RB 8827 300 3 the the DT 8827 300 4 unbelieving unbelieving JJ 8827 300 5 Jews Jews NNPS 8827 300 6 stirred stir VBD 8827 300 7 up up RP 8827 300 8 the the DT 8827 300 9 mob mob NN 8827 300 10 against against IN 8827 300 11 Paul Paul NNP 8827 300 12 and and CC 8827 300 13 Silas Silas NNP 8827 300 14 , , , 8827 300 15 and and CC 8827 300 16 dragged drag VBD 8827 300 17 Jason Jason NNP 8827 300 18 before before IN 8827 300 19 the the DT 8827 300 20 magistrates magistrate NNS 8827 300 21 . . . 8827 301 1 Hence hence RB 8827 301 2 the the DT 8827 301 3 brethren brother NNS 8827 301 4 sent send VBD 8827 301 5 the the DT 8827 301 6 missionaries missionary NNS 8827 301 7 away away RB 8827 301 8 by by IN 8827 301 9 night night NN 8827 301 10 to to IN 8827 301 11 Beroea Beroea NNP 8827 301 12 , , , 8827 301 13 being be VBG 8827 301 14 alarmed alarm VBN 8827 301 15 for for IN 8827 301 16 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 301 17 safety safety NN 8827 301 18 . . . 8827 302 1 As as IN 8827 302 2 the the DT 8827 302 3 Apostle apostle NN 8827 302 4 was be VBD 8827 302 5 naturally naturally RB 8827 302 6 anxious anxious JJ 8827 302 7 about about IN 8827 302 8 the the DT 8827 302 9 persecuted persecute VBN 8827 302 10 flock flock NN 8827 302 11 which which WDT 8827 302 12 he -PRON- PRP 8827 302 13 had have VBD 8827 302 14 been be VBN 8827 302 15 obliged oblige VBN 8827 302 16 to to TO 8827 302 17 leave leave VB 8827 302 18 behind behind RB 8827 302 19 , , , 8827 302 20 he -PRON- PRP 8827 302 21 made make VBD 8827 302 22 two two CD 8827 302 23 attempts attempt NNS 8827 302 24 to to TO 8827 302 25 return return VB 8827 302 26 to to IN 8827 302 27 them -PRON- PRP 8827 302 28 , , , 8827 302 29 but but CC 8827 302 30 these these DT 8827 302 31 being be VBG 8827 302 32 frustrated frustrated JJ 8827 302 33 ( ( -LRB- 8827 302 34 1Th 1th CD 8827 302 35 2:18 2:18 CD 8827 302 36 ) ) -RRB- 8827 302 37 , , , 8827 302 38 he -PRON- PRP 8827 302 39 then then RB 8827 302 40 sent send VBD 8827 302 41 Timothy Timothy NNP 8827 302 42 , , , 8827 302 43 from from IN 8827 302 44 Athens Athens NNP 8827 302 45 , , , 8827 302 46 to to TO 8827 302 47 inquire inquire VB 8827 302 48 after after IN 8827 302 49 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 302 50 welfare welfare NN 8827 302 51 and and CC 8827 302 52 encourage encourage VB 8827 302 53 them -PRON- PRP 8827 302 54 . . . 8827 303 1 The the DT 8827 303 2 report report NN 8827 303 3 brought bring VBD 8827 303 4 back back RB 8827 303 5 was be VBD 8827 303 6 on on IN 8827 303 7 the the DT 8827 303 8 whole whole JJ 8827 303 9 satisfactory satisfactory NN 8827 303 10 , , , 8827 303 11 but but CC 8827 303 12 left leave VBD 8827 303 13 occasion occasion NN 8827 303 14 for for IN 8827 303 15 the the DT 8827 303 16 self self NN 8827 303 17 - - HYPH 8827 303 18 defence defence NN 8827 303 19 , , , 8827 303 20 the the DT 8827 303 21 warnings warning NNS 8827 303 22 and and CC 8827 303 23 the the DT 8827 303 24 exhortations exhortation NNS 8827 303 25 of of IN 8827 303 26 this this DT 8827 303 27 Letter Letter NNP 8827 303 28 , , , 8827 303 29 which which WDT 8827 303 30 was be VBD 8827 303 31 then then RB 8827 303 32 sent send VBN 8827 303 33 from from IN 8827 303 34 Corinth Corinth NNP 8827 303 35 , , , 8827 303 36 probably probably RB 8827 303 37 in in IN 8827 303 38 53 53 CD 8827 303 39 A.D. a.d. NN 8827 303 40 Paul Paul NNP 8827 303 41 's 's POS 8827 303 42 Second Second NNP 8827 303 43 Letter Letter NNP 8827 303 44 to to IN 8827 303 45 the the DT 8827 303 46 Thessalonians Thessalonians NNPS 8827 303 47 This this DT 8827 303 48 Letter Letter NNP 8827 303 49 was be VBD 8827 303 50 written write VBN 8827 303 51 from from IN 8827 303 52 Corinth Corinth NNP 8827 303 53 not not RB 8827 303 54 long long RB 8827 303 55 after after IN 8827 303 56 the the DT 8827 303 57 preceding precede VBG 8827 303 58 one one CD 8827 303 59 , , , 8827 303 60 and and CC 8827 303 61 probably probably RB 8827 303 62 in in IN 8827 303 63 the the DT 8827 303 64 year year NN 8827 303 65 54 54 CD 8827 303 66 A.D. a.d. NN 8827 303 67 Its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 303 68 occasion occasion NN 8827 303 69 was be VBD 8827 303 70 the the DT 8827 303 71 reception reception NN 8827 303 72 of of IN 8827 303 73 tidings tiding NNS 8827 303 74 from from IN 8827 303 75 Thessalonica Thessalonica NNP 8827 303 76 which which WDT 8827 303 77 showed show VBD 8827 303 78 that that IN 8827 303 79 there there EX 8827 303 80 had have VBD 8827 303 81 been be VBN 8827 303 82 a a DT 8827 303 83 measure measure NN 8827 303 84 of of IN 8827 303 85 misapprehension misapprehension NN 8827 303 86 of of IN 8827 303 87 the the DT 8827 303 88 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 303 89 's 's POS 8827 303 90 teaching teaching NN 8827 303 91 in in IN 8827 303 92 regard regard NN 8827 303 93 to to IN 8827 303 94 the the DT 8827 303 95 Return Return NNP 8827 303 96 of of IN 8827 303 97 the the DT 8827 303 98 Lord Lord NNP 8827 303 99 Jesus Jesus NNP 8827 303 100 , , , 8827 303 101 and and CC 8827 303 102 also also RB 8827 303 103 that that IN 8827 303 104 there there EX 8827 303 105 was be VBD 8827 303 106 a a DT 8827 303 107 definitely definitely RB 8827 303 108 disorderly disorderly JJ 8827 303 109 section section NN 8827 303 110 in in IN 8827 303 111 the the DT 8827 303 112 Church Church NNP 8827 303 113 there there RB 8827 303 114 , , , 8827 303 115 capable capable JJ 8827 303 116 of of IN 8827 303 117 doing do VBG 8827 303 118 great great JJ 8827 303 119 harm harm NN 8827 303 120 . . . 8827 304 1 Hence hence RB 8827 304 2 Paul Paul NNP 8827 304 3 writes write VBZ 8827 304 4 to to TO 8827 304 5 correct correct VB 8827 304 6 the the DT 8827 304 7 error error NN 8827 304 8 into into IN 8827 304 9 which which WDT 8827 304 10 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 304 11 converts convert NNS 8827 304 12 had have VBD 8827 304 13 fallen fall VBN 8827 304 14 , , , 8827 304 15 and and CC 8827 304 16 at at IN 8827 304 17 the the DT 8827 304 18 same same JJ 8827 304 19 time time NN 8827 304 20 he -PRON- PRP 8827 304 21 uses use VBZ 8827 304 22 strong strong JJ 8827 304 23 language language NN 8827 304 24 as as IN 8827 304 25 to to IN 8827 304 26 the the DT 8827 304 27 treatment treatment NN 8827 304 28 to to TO 8827 304 29 be be VB 8827 304 30 dealt deal VBN 8827 304 31 out out RP 8827 304 32 to to IN 8827 304 33 those those DT 8827 304 34 members member NNS 8827 304 35 of of IN 8827 304 36 the the DT 8827 304 37 Church Church NNP 8827 304 38 who who WP 8827 304 39 were be VBD 8827 304 40 given give VBN 8827 304 41 to to IN 8827 304 42 idleness idleness JJ 8827 304 43 and and CC 8827 304 44 insubordination insubordination NN 8827 304 45 . . . 8827 305 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 305 2 's 's POS 8827 305 3 First First NNP 8827 305 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 305 5 to to IN 8827 305 6 Timothy Timothy NNP 8827 305 7 There there EX 8827 305 8 has have VBZ 8827 305 9 never never RB 8827 305 10 been be VBN 8827 305 11 any any DT 8827 305 12 real real JJ 8827 305 13 doubt doubt NN 8827 305 14 among among IN 8827 305 15 Christian christian JJ 8827 305 16 people people NNS 8827 305 17 as as IN 8827 305 18 to to IN 8827 305 19 the the DT 8827 305 20 authorship authorship NN 8827 305 21 of of IN 8827 305 22 the the DT 8827 305 23 three three CD 8827 305 24 " " `` 8827 305 25 pastoral pastoral JJ 8827 305 26 " " '' 8827 305 27 Letters letter NNS 8827 305 28 . . . 8827 306 1 But but CC 8827 306 2 definite definite JJ 8827 306 3 objections objection NNS 8827 306 4 to to IN 8827 306 5 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 306 6 genuineness genuineness NN 8827 306 7 have have VBP 8827 306 8 been be VBN 8827 306 9 made make VBN 8827 306 10 in in IN 8827 306 11 recent recent JJ 8827 306 12 times time NNS 8827 306 13 upon upon IN 8827 306 14 the the DT 8827 306 15 ground ground NN 8827 306 16 of of IN 8827 306 17 such such JJ 8827 306 18 internal internal JJ 8827 306 19 evidence evidence NN 8827 306 20 as as IN 8827 306 21 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 306 22 style style NN 8827 306 23 , , , 8827 306 24 the the DT 8827 306 25 indications indication NNS 8827 306 26 they -PRON- PRP 8827 306 27 present present VBP 8827 306 28 of of IN 8827 306 29 advanced advanced JJ 8827 306 30 organization organization NN 8827 306 31 , , , 8827 306 32 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 306 33 historic historic JJ 8827 306 34 standpoint standpoint NN 8827 306 35 and and CC 8827 306 36 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 306 37 references reference NNS 8827 306 38 to to IN 8827 306 39 developed develop VBN 8827 306 40 heresy heresy NN 8827 306 41 . . . 8827 307 1 Says say VBZ 8827 307 2 one one CD 8827 307 3 scholar scholar NN 8827 307 4 , , , 8827 307 5 " " `` 8827 307 6 While while IN 8827 307 7 there there EX 8827 307 8 is be VBZ 8827 307 9 probably probably RB 8827 307 10 nothing nothing NN 8827 307 11 in in IN 8827 307 12 them -PRON- PRP 8827 307 13 to to TO 8827 307 14 which which WDT 8827 307 15 the the DT 8827 307 16 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 307 17 would would MD 8827 307 18 have have VB 8827 307 19 objected object VBN 8827 307 20 , , , 8827 307 21 they -PRON- PRP 8827 307 22 must must MD 8827 307 23 be be VB 8827 307 24 regarded regard VBN 8827 307 25 on on IN 8827 307 26 account account NN 8827 307 27 of of IN 8827 307 28 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 307 29 style style NN 8827 307 30 as as IN 8827 307 31 the the DT 8827 307 32 product product NN 8827 307 33 of of IN 8827 307 34 one one CD 8827 307 35 who who WP 8827 307 36 had have VBD 8827 307 37 been be VBN 8827 307 38 taught teach VBN 8827 307 39 by by IN 8827 307 40 Paul Paul NNP 8827 307 41 and and CC 8827 307 42 now now RB 8827 307 43 desired desire VBN 8827 307 44 to to TO 8827 307 45 convey convey VB 8827 307 46 certain certain JJ 8827 307 47 teachings teaching NNS 8827 307 48 under under IN 8827 307 49 cover cover NN 8827 307 50 of of IN 8827 307 51 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 307 52 name name NN 8827 307 53 . . . 8827 308 1 The the DT 8827 308 2 date date NN 8827 308 3 need nee MD 8827 308 4 not not RB 8827 308 5 be be VB 8827 308 6 later later RB 8827 308 7 than than IN 8827 308 8 80 80 CD 8827 308 9 A.D. a.d. NN 8827 308 10 " " `` 8827 308 11 Yet yet CC 8827 308 12 a a DT 8827 308 13 thorough thorough JJ 8827 308 14 examination examination NN 8827 308 15 of of IN 8827 308 16 the the DT 8827 308 17 matter matter NN 8827 308 18 does do VBZ 8827 308 19 not not RB 8827 308 20 support support VB 8827 308 21 such such JJ 8827 308 22 objections objection NNS 8827 308 23 . . . 8827 309 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 309 2 is be VBZ 8827 309 3 certain certain JJ 8827 309 4 that that IN 8827 309 5 the the DT 8827 309 6 three three CD 8827 309 7 Letters letter NNS 8827 309 8 stand stand VBP 8827 309 9 or or CC 8827 309 10 fall fall VBP 8827 309 11 together together RB 8827 309 12 , , , 8827 309 13 and and CC 8827 309 14 there there EX 8827 309 15 is be VBZ 8827 309 16 no no DT 8827 309 17 sufficient sufficient JJ 8827 309 18 reason reason NN 8827 309 19 for for IN 8827 309 20 dismissing dismiss VBG 8827 309 21 the the DT 8827 309 22 ancient ancient JJ 8827 309 23 conclusion conclusion NN 8827 309 24 that that IN 8827 309 25 they -PRON- PRP 8827 309 26 are be VBP 8827 309 27 all all PDT 8827 309 28 the the DT 8827 309 29 genuine genuine JJ 8827 309 30 work work NN 8827 309 31 of of IN 8827 309 32 Paul Paul NNP 8827 309 33 , , , 8827 309 34 and and CC 8827 309 35 belong belong VB 8827 309 36 to to IN 8827 309 37 the the DT 8827 309 38 last last JJ 8827 309 39 years year NNS 8827 309 40 of of IN 8827 309 41 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 309 42 life life NN 8827 309 43 , , , 8827 309 44 66 66 CD 8827 309 45 - - SYM 8827 309 46 67 67 CD 8827 309 47 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 310 1 This this DT 8827 310 2 first first JJ 8827 310 3 Letter Letter NNP 8827 310 4 was be VBD 8827 310 5 probably probably RB 8827 310 6 written write VBN 8827 310 7 from from IN 8827 310 8 Macedonia Macedonia NNP 8827 310 9 . . . 8827 311 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 311 2 's 's POS 8827 311 3 Second Second NNP 8827 311 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 311 5 to to IN 8827 311 6 Timothy Timothy NNP 8827 311 7 The the DT 8827 311 8 marks mark NNS 8827 311 9 of of IN 8827 311 10 genuineness genuineness NN 8827 311 11 in in IN 8827 311 12 this this DT 8827 311 13 Letter letter NN 8827 311 14 are be VBP 8827 311 15 very very RB 8827 311 16 pronounced pronounced JJ 8827 311 17 . . . 8827 312 1 For for IN 8827 312 2 instance instance NN 8827 312 3 , , , 8827 312 4 the the DT 8827 312 5 thanksgiving thanksgiving NN 8827 312 6 , , , 8827 312 7 the the DT 8827 312 8 long long JJ 8827 312 9 list list NN 8827 312 10 of of IN 8827 312 11 proper proper JJ 8827 312 12 names name NNS 8827 312 13 -- -- : 8827 312 14 twenty twenty CD 8827 312 15 - - HYPH 8827 312 16 three three CD 8827 312 17 in in IN 8827 312 18 number number NN 8827 312 19 -- -- : 8827 312 20 the the DT 8827 312 21 personal personal JJ 8827 312 22 details detail NNS 8827 312 23 and and CC 8827 312 24 the the DT 8827 312 25 manifest manif JJS 8827 312 26 tone tone NN 8827 312 27 of of IN 8827 312 28 sincerity sincerity NN 8827 312 29 and and CC 8827 312 30 earnestness earnestness NN 8827 312 31 . . . 8827 313 1 Hence hence RB 8827 313 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 313 3 is be VBZ 8827 313 4 accepted accept VBN 8827 313 5 as as IN 8827 313 6 Paul Paul NNP 8827 313 7 's be VBZ 8827 313 8 even even RB 8827 313 9 by by IN 8827 313 10 some some DT 8827 313 11 who who WP 8827 313 12 reject reject VBP 8827 313 13 the the DT 8827 313 14 former former JJ 8827 313 15 Letter Letter NNP 8827 313 16 and and CC 8827 313 17 that that DT 8827 313 18 addressed address VBD 8827 313 19 to to IN 8827 313 20 Titus Titus NNP 8827 313 21 . . . 8827 314 1 But but CC 8827 314 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 314 3 is be VBZ 8827 314 4 inseparable inseparable JJ 8827 314 5 from from IN 8827 314 6 the the DT 8827 314 7 others other NNS 8827 314 8 , , , 8827 314 9 and and CC 8827 314 10 was be VBD 8827 314 11 probably probably RB 8827 314 12 written write VBN 8827 314 13 from from IN 8827 314 14 Rome Rome NNP 8827 314 15 during during IN 8827 314 16 the the DT 8827 314 17 Apostle apostle NN 8827 314 18 's 's POS 8827 314 19 second second JJ 8827 314 20 imprisonment imprisonment NN 8827 314 21 . . . 8827 315 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 315 2 is be VBZ 8827 315 3 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 315 4 last last JJ 8827 315 5 Letter letter NN 8827 315 6 known know VBN 8827 315 7 to to IN 8827 315 8 us -PRON- PRP 8827 315 9 , , , 8827 315 10 and and CC 8827 315 11 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 315 12 apparent apparent JJ 8827 315 13 date date NN 8827 315 14 is be VBZ 8827 315 15 67 67 CD 8827 315 16 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 315 17 Paul Paul NNP 8827 315 18 's 's POS 8827 315 19 Letter letter NN 8827 315 20 to to IN 8827 315 21 Titus Titus NNP 8827 315 22 This this DT 8827 315 23 Letter Letter NNP 8827 315 24 was be VBD 8827 315 25 probably probably RB 8827 315 26 written write VBN 8827 315 27 from from IN 8827 315 28 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 315 29 in in IN 8827 315 30 67 67 CD 8827 315 31 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 315 32 Titus Titus NNP 8827 315 33 , , , 8827 315 34 who who WP 8827 315 35 was be VBD 8827 315 36 a a DT 8827 315 37 Greek Greek NNP 8827 315 38 by by IN 8827 315 39 birth birth NN 8827 315 40 , , , 8827 315 41 is be VBZ 8827 315 42 mentioned mention VBN 8827 315 43 in in IN 8827 315 44 eleven eleven CD 8827 315 45 other other JJ 8827 315 46 places place NNS 8827 315 47 in in IN 8827 315 48 the the DT 8827 315 49 Pauline Pauline NNP 8827 315 50 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 315 51 and and CC 8827 315 52 always always RB 8827 315 53 with with IN 8827 315 54 marked marked JJ 8827 315 55 approval approval NN 8827 315 56 ( ( -LRB- 8827 315 57 2Co 2co CD 8827 315 58 2:13 2:13 CD 8827 315 59 ; ; : 8827 315 60 7:6,13,14 7:6,13,14 CD 8827 315 61 ; ; : 8827 315 62 8:6,16,23 8:6,16,23 CD 8827 315 63 ; ; : 8827 315 64 12:18 12:18 CD 8827 315 65 ; ; : 8827 315 66 Ga Ga NNP 8827 315 67 2:1,3 2:1,3 CD 8827 315 68 ; ; : 8827 315 69 2Ti 2ti CD 8827 315 70 4:10 4:10 CD 8827 315 71 ) ) -RRB- 8827 315 72 . . . 8827 316 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 316 2 was be VBD 8827 316 3 often often RB 8827 316 4 a a DT 8827 316 5 trusted trust VBN 8827 316 6 messenger messenger NN 8827 316 7 to to IN 8827 316 8 the the DT 8827 316 9 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 316 10 , , , 8827 316 11 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 316 12 last last JJ 8827 316 13 errand errand NN 8827 316 14 being be VBG 8827 316 15 to to IN 8827 316 16 Dalmatia Dalmatia NNP 8827 316 17 . . . 8827 317 1 Tradition tradition NN 8827 317 2 confirms confirm VBZ 8827 317 3 the the DT 8827 317 4 inference inference NN 8827 317 5 commonly commonly RB 8827 317 6 drawn draw VBN 8827 317 7 from from IN 8827 317 8 this this DT 8827 317 9 Letter letter NN 8827 317 10 that that IN 8827 317 11 he -PRON- PRP 8827 317 12 was be VBD 8827 317 13 long long RB 8827 317 14 the the DT 8827 317 15 Bishop Bishop NNP 8827 317 16 of of IN 8827 317 17 the the DT 8827 317 18 Church Church NNP 8827 317 19 in in IN 8827 317 20 Crete Crete NNP 8827 317 21 , , , 8827 317 22 and and CC 8827 317 23 regards regard VBZ 8827 317 24 Candia Candia NNP 8827 317 25 as as IN 8827 317 26 having have VBG 8827 317 27 been be VBN 8827 317 28 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 317 29 birthplace birthplace NN 8827 317 30 . . . 8827 318 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 318 2 's 's POS 8827 318 3 Letter letter NN 8827 318 4 to to IN 8827 318 5 Philemon Philemon NNP 8827 318 6 This this DT 8827 318 7 Letter Letter NNP 8827 318 8 ( ( -LRB- 8827 318 9 63 63 CD 8827 318 10 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 318 11 ) ) -RRB- 8827 318 12 was be VBD 8827 318 13 written write VBN 8827 318 14 as as IN 8827 318 15 the the DT 8827 318 16 result result NN 8827 318 17 of of IN 8827 318 18 Paul Paul NNP 8827 318 19 's 's POS 8827 318 20 deep deep JJ 8827 318 21 interest interest NN 8827 318 22 in in IN 8827 318 23 Onesimus Onesimus NNP 8827 318 24 , , , 8827 318 25 a a DT 8827 318 26 slave slave NN 8827 318 27 who who WP 8827 318 28 had have VBD 8827 318 29 fled flee VBN 8827 318 30 from from IN 8827 318 31 Colossae Colossae NNP 8827 318 32 to to IN 8827 318 33 Rome Rome NNP 8827 318 34 to to TO 8827 318 35 get get VB 8827 318 36 free free JJ 8827 318 37 from from IN 8827 318 38 Philemon Philemon NNP 8827 318 39 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 318 40 master master NN 8827 318 41 ( ( -LRB- 8827 318 42 Col Col NNP 8827 318 43 4:9 4:9 NNP 8827 318 44 ) ) -RRB- 8827 318 45 . . . 8827 319 1 " " `` 8827 319 2 A a DT 8827 319 3 Phrygian phrygian JJ 8827 319 4 slave slave NN 8827 319 5 was be VBD 8827 319 6 one one CD 8827 319 7 of of IN 8827 319 8 the the DT 8827 319 9 lowest low JJS 8827 319 10 known known JJ 8827 319 11 types type NNS 8827 319 12 to to TO 8827 319 13 be be VB 8827 319 14 found find VBN 8827 319 15 in in IN 8827 319 16 the the DT 8827 319 17 Roman roman JJ 8827 319 18 world world NN 8827 319 19 , , , 8827 319 20 displaying display VBG 8827 319 21 all all PDT 8827 319 22 the the DT 8827 319 23 worst bad JJS 8827 319 24 features feature NNS 8827 319 25 of of IN 8827 319 26 character character NN 8827 319 27 which which WDT 8827 319 28 the the DT 8827 319 29 servile servile NN 8827 319 30 condition condition NN 8827 319 31 developed develop VBD 8827 319 32 . . . 8827 320 1 Onesimus Onesimus NNP 8827 320 2 had have VBD 8827 320 3 proved prove VBN 8827 320 4 no no DT 8827 320 5 exception exception NN 8827 320 6 . . . 8827 321 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 321 2 ran run VBD 8827 321 3 away away RB 8827 321 4 from from IN 8827 321 5 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 321 6 master master NN 8827 321 7 , , , 8827 321 8 and and CC 8827 321 9 , , , 8827 321 10 as as IN 8827 321 11 Paul Paul NNP 8827 321 12 thought think VBD 8827 321 13 probable probable RB 8827 321 14 ( ( -LRB- 8827 321 15 verses verse NNS 8827 321 16 18,19 18,19 CD 8827 321 17 ) ) -RRB- 8827 321 18 , , , 8827 321 19 not not RB 8827 321 20 without without IN 8827 321 21 helping help VBG 8827 321 22 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 321 23 to to IN 8827 321 24 a a DT 8827 321 25 share share NN 8827 321 26 of of IN 8827 321 27 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 321 28 master master NN 8827 321 29 's 's POS 8827 321 30 possessions possession NNS 8827 321 31 . . . 8827 322 1 By by IN 8827 322 2 the the DT 8827 322 3 help help NN 8827 322 4 of of IN 8827 322 5 what what WP 8827 322 6 he -PRON- PRP 8827 322 7 had have VBD 8827 322 8 stolen steal VBN 8827 322 9 , , , 8827 322 10 and and CC 8827 322 11 by by IN 8827 322 12 the the DT 8827 322 13 cleverness cleverness NN 8827 322 14 which which WDT 8827 322 15 afterwards afterwards RB 8827 322 16 made make VBD 8827 322 17 him -PRON- PRP 8827 322 18 so so RB 8827 322 19 helpful helpful JJ 8827 322 20 to to IN 8827 322 21 Paul Paul NNP 8827 322 22 , , , 8827 322 23 he -PRON- PRP 8827 322 24 made make VBD 8827 322 25 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 322 26 way way NN 8827 322 27 to to IN 8827 322 28 Rome Rome NNP 8827 322 29 , , , 8827 322 30 naturally naturally RB 8827 322 31 drawn draw VBN 8827 322 32 to to IN 8827 322 33 the the DT 8827 322 34 great great JJ 8827 322 35 centre centre NN 8827 322 36 , , , 8827 322 37 and and CC 8827 322 38 prompted prompt VBD 8827 322 39 both both CC 8827 322 40 by by IN 8827 322 41 a a DT 8827 322 42 desire desire NN 8827 322 43 to to TO 8827 322 44 hide hide VB 8827 322 45 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 322 46 and and CC 8827 322 47 by by IN 8827 322 48 a a DT 8827 322 49 youthful youthful JJ 8827 322 50 yearning yearning NN 8827 322 51 to to TO 8827 322 52 see see VB 8827 322 53 the the DT 8827 322 54 utmost utmost NN 8827 322 55 the the DT 8827 322 56 world world NN 8827 322 57 could could MD 8827 322 58 show show VB 8827 322 59 of of IN 8827 322 60 glory glory NN 8827 322 61 and and CC 8827 322 62 of of IN 8827 322 63 vice vice NN 8827 322 64 . . . 8827 323 1 " " `` 8827 323 2 But but CC 8827 323 3 whether whether IN 8827 323 4 feeling feel VBG 8827 323 5 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 323 6 loneliness loneliness NN 8827 323 7 , , , 8827 323 8 or or CC 8827 323 9 wearied weary VBN 8827 323 10 with with IN 8827 323 11 a a DT 8827 323 12 life life NN 8827 323 13 of of IN 8827 323 14 vice vice NN 8827 323 15 , , , 8827 323 16 or or CC 8827 323 17 impoverished impoverished JJ 8827 323 18 and and CC 8827 323 19 reduced reduce VBN 8827 323 20 to to TO 8827 323 21 want want VB 8827 323 22 , , , 8827 323 23 or or CC 8827 323 24 seized seize VBN 8827 323 25 with with IN 8827 323 26 a a DT 8827 323 27 fear fear NN 8827 323 28 of of IN 8827 323 29 detection detection NN 8827 323 30 , , , 8827 323 31 he -PRON- PRP 8827 323 32 made make VBD 8827 323 33 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 323 34 way way NN 8827 323 35 to to IN 8827 323 36 Paul Paul NNP 8827 323 37 , , , 8827 323 38 or or CC 8827 323 39 unbosomed unbosom VBD 8827 323 40 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 323 41 to to IN 8827 323 42 some some DT 8827 323 43 Asiatic Asiatic NNP 8827 323 44 he -PRON- PRP 8827 323 45 saw see VBD 8827 323 46 on on IN 8827 323 47 the the DT 8827 323 48 street street NN 8827 323 49 . . . 8827 324 1 And and CC 8827 324 2 as as IN 8827 324 3 he -PRON- PRP 8827 324 4 stepped step VBD 8827 324 5 out out IN 8827 324 6 of of IN 8827 324 7 the the DT 8827 324 8 coarse coarse JJ 8827 324 9 debauchery debauchery NN 8827 324 10 and and CC 8827 324 11 profanity profanity NN 8827 324 12 of of IN 8827 324 13 the the DT 8827 324 14 crowded crowded JJ 8827 324 15 resorts resort NNS 8827 324 16 of of IN 8827 324 17 the the DT 8827 324 18 metropolis metropolis NN 8827 324 19 into into IN 8827 324 20 the the DT 8827 324 21 room room NN 8827 324 22 hallowed hallow VBN 8827 324 23 by by IN 8827 324 24 the the DT 8827 324 25 presence presence NN 8827 324 26 of of IN 8827 324 27 Paul Paul NNP 8827 324 28 , , , 8827 324 29 he -PRON- PRP 8827 324 30 saw see VBD 8827 324 31 the the DT 8827 324 32 foulness foulness NN 8827 324 33 of of IN 8827 324 34 the the DT 8827 324 35 one one CD 8827 324 36 life life NN 8827 324 37 and and CC 8827 324 38 the the DT 8827 324 39 beauty beauty NN 8827 324 40 of of IN 8827 324 41 the the DT 8827 324 42 other other JJ 8827 324 43 , , , 8827 324 44 and and CC 8827 324 45 was be VBD 8827 324 46 persuaded persuade VBN 8827 324 47 to to TO 8827 324 48 accept accept VB 8827 324 49 the the DT 8827 324 50 gospel gospel NN 8827 324 51 he -PRON- PRP 8827 324 52 had have VBD 8827 324 53 so so RB 8827 324 54 often often RB 8827 324 55 heard hear VBN 8827 324 56 in in IN 8827 324 57 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 324 58 master master NN 8827 324 59 's 's POS 8827 324 60 house house NN 8827 324 61 . . . 8827 325 1 " " `` 8827 325 2 How how WRB 8827 325 3 long long RB 8827 325 4 he -PRON- PRP 8827 325 5 remained remain VBD 8827 325 6 with with IN 8827 325 7 Paul Paul NNP 8827 325 8 does do VBZ 8827 325 9 not not RB 8827 325 10 appear appear VB 8827 325 11 , , , 8827 325 12 but but CC 8827 325 13 it -PRON- PRP 8827 325 14 was be VBD 8827 325 15 long long JJ 8827 325 16 enough enough RB 8827 325 17 to to TO 8827 325 18 impress impress VB 8827 325 19 on on IN 8827 325 20 the the DT 8827 325 21 Apostle apostle NN 8827 325 22 's 's POS 8827 325 23 mind mind NN 8827 325 24 that that IN 8827 325 25 this this DT 8827 325 26 slave slave NN 8827 325 27 was be VBD 8827 325 28 no no DT 8827 325 29 common common JJ 8827 325 30 man man NN 8827 325 31 . . . 8827 326 1 Paul Paul NNP 8827 326 2 had have VBD 8827 326 3 devoted devote VBN 8827 326 4 and and CC 8827 326 5 active active JJ 8827 326 6 friends friend NNS 8827 326 7 by by IN 8827 326 8 him -PRON- PRP 8827 326 9 , , , 8827 326 10 but but CC 8827 326 11 this this DT 8827 326 12 slave slave NN 8827 326 13 , , , 8827 326 14 trained train VBN 8827 326 15 to to TO 8827 326 16 watch watch VB 8827 326 17 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 326 18 master master NN 8827 326 19 's 's POS 8827 326 20 wants want VBZ 8827 326 21 and and CC 8827 326 22 to to TO 8827 326 23 execute execute VB 8827 326 24 promptly promptly RB 8827 326 25 all all DT 8827 326 26 that that WDT 8827 326 27 was be VBD 8827 326 28 entrusted entrust VBN 8827 326 29 to to IN 8827 326 30 him -PRON- PRP 8827 326 31 , , , 8827 326 32 became become VBD 8827 326 33 almost almost RB 8827 326 34 indispensable indispensable JJ 8827 326 35 to to IN 8827 326 36 the the DT 8827 326 37 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 326 38 . . . 8827 327 1 But but CC 8827 327 2 to to TO 8827 327 3 retain retain VB 8827 327 4 him -PRON- PRP 8827 327 5 , , , 8827 327 6 he -PRON- PRP 8827 327 7 feels feel VBZ 8827 327 8 , , , 8827 327 9 would would MD 8827 327 10 be be VB 8827 327 11 to to TO 8827 327 12 steal steal VB 8827 327 13 him -PRON- PRP 8827 327 14 , , , 8827 327 15 or or CC 8827 327 16 at at IN 8827 327 17 any any DT 8827 327 18 rate rate NN 8827 327 19 to to TO 8827 327 20 deprive deprive VB 8827 327 21 Philemon Philemon NNP 8827 327 22 of of IN 8827 327 23 the the DT 8827 327 24 pleasure pleasure NN 8827 327 25 of of IN 8827 327 26 voluntarily voluntarily RB 8827 327 27 sending send VBG 8827 327 28 him -PRON- PRP 8827 327 29 to to IN 8827 327 30 minister minister NNP 8827 327 31 to to IN 8827 327 32 him -PRON- PRP 8827 327 33 ( ( -LRB- 8827 327 34 verse verse NN 8827 327 35 14 14 CD 8827 327 36 ) ) -RRB- 8827 327 37 . . . 8827 328 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 328 2 therefore therefore RB 8827 328 3 sends send VBZ 8827 328 4 him -PRON- PRP 8827 328 5 back back RB 8827 328 6 with with IN 8827 328 7 this this DT 8827 328 8 Letter letter NN 8827 328 9 , , , 8827 328 10 so so RB 8827 328 11 exquisitely exquisitely RB 8827 328 12 worded word VBD 8827 328 13 that that IN 8827 328 14 it -PRON- PRP 8827 328 15 can can MD 8827 328 16 not not RB 8827 328 17 but but CC 8827 328 18 have have VB 8827 328 19 secured secure VBN 8827 328 20 the the DT 8827 328 21 forgiveness forgiveness NN 8827 328 22 and and CC 8827 328 23 cordial cordial JJ 8827 328 24 reception reception NN 8827 328 25 of of IN 8827 328 26 Onesimus Onesimus NNP 8827 328 27 " " '' 8827 328 28 ( ( -LRB- 8827 328 29 Marcus Marcus NNP 8827 328 30 Dods Dods NNP 8827 328 31 , , , 8827 328 32 D.D. D.D. NNP 8827 328 33 , , , 8827 328 34 _ _ NNP 8827 328 35 New New NNP 8827 328 36 Testament Testament NNP 8827 328 37 Introduction Introduction NNP 8827 328 38 _ _ NNP 8827 328 39 ) ) -RRB- 8827 328 40 . . . 8827 329 1 The the DT 8827 329 2 Letter Letter NNP 8827 329 3 to to IN 8827 329 4 the the DT 8827 329 5 Hebrews Hebrews NNPS 8827 329 6 As as IN 8827 329 7 regards regard VBZ 8827 329 8 the the DT 8827 329 9 date date NN 8827 329 10 of of IN 8827 329 11 this this DT 8827 329 12 Letter Letter NNP 8827 329 13 , , , 8827 329 14 the the DT 8827 329 15 only only JJ 8827 329 16 sure sure JJ 8827 329 17 conclusion conclusion NN 8827 329 18 appears appear VBZ 8827 329 19 to to TO 8827 329 20 be be VB 8827 329 21 that that IN 8827 329 22 it -PRON- PRP 8827 329 23 was be VBD 8827 329 24 before before IN 8827 329 25 70 70 CD 8827 329 26 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 330 1 The the DT 8827 330 2 book book NN 8827 330 3 itself -PRON- PRP 8827 330 4 claims claim VBZ 8827 330 5 to to TO 8827 330 6 have have VB 8827 330 7 been be VBN 8827 330 8 written write VBN 8827 330 9 at at IN 8827 330 10 the the DT 8827 330 11 end end NN 8827 330 12 of of IN 8827 330 13 the the DT 8827 330 14 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 330 15 Age Age NNP 8827 330 16 ( ( -LRB- 8827 330 17 1:2 1:2 CD 8827 330 18 ; ; : 8827 330 19 9:26 9:26 CD 8827 330 20 ) ) -RRB- 8827 330 21 , , , 8827 330 22 whilst whilst IN 8827 330 23 the the DT 8827 330 24 earthly earthly JJ 8827 330 25 temple temple NN 8827 330 26 was be VBD 8827 330 27 still still RB 8827 330 28 in in IN 8827 330 29 existence existence NN 8827 330 30 ( ( -LRB- 8827 330 31 9:8 9:8 CD 8827 330 32 ) ) -RRB- 8827 330 33 , , , 8827 330 34 and and CC 8827 330 35 it -PRON- PRP 8827 330 36 is be VBZ 8827 330 37 inconceivable inconceivable JJ 8827 330 38 that that IN 8827 330 39 such such PDT 8827 330 40 an an DT 8827 330 41 overwhelming overwhelming JJ 8827 330 42 comment comment NN 8827 330 43 upon upon IN 8827 330 44 the the DT 8827 330 45 writer writer NN 8827 330 46 's 's POS 8827 330 47 whole whole JJ 8827 330 48 position position NN 8827 330 49 as as IN 8827 330 50 that that DT 8827 330 51 afforded afford VBN 8827 330 52 by by IN 8827 330 53 the the DT 8827 330 54 destruction destruction NN 8827 330 55 of of IN 8827 330 56 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 330 57 would would MD 8827 330 58 have have VB 8827 330 59 been be VBN 8827 330 60 overlooked overlook VBN 8827 330 61 , , , 8827 330 62 had have VBD 8827 330 63 it -PRON- PRP 8827 330 64 been be VBN 8827 330 65 available available JJ 8827 330 66 . . . 8827 331 1 Hence hence RB 8827 331 2 67 67 CD 8827 331 3 - - SYM 8827 331 4 68 68 CD 8827 331 5 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 331 6 may may MD 8827 331 7 with with IN 8827 331 8 probability probability NN 8827 331 9 be be VB 8827 331 10 alleged allege VBN 8827 331 11 as as IN 8827 331 12 the the DT 8827 331 13 time time NN 8827 331 14 of of IN 8827 331 15 composition composition NN 8827 331 16 . . . 8827 332 1 The the DT 8827 332 2 only only JJ 8827 332 3 fact fact NN 8827 332 4 clear clear JJ 8827 332 5 as as IN 8827 332 6 to to IN 8827 332 7 the the DT 8827 332 8 author author NN 8827 332 9 is be VBZ 8827 332 10 that that IN 8827 332 11 he -PRON- PRP 8827 332 12 was be VBD 8827 332 13 not not RB 8827 332 14 the the DT 8827 332 15 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 332 16 Paul Paul NNP 8827 332 17 . . . 8827 333 1 The the DT 8827 333 2 early early JJ 8827 333 3 Fathers father NNS 8827 333 4 did do VBD 8827 333 5 not not RB 8827 333 6 attribute attribute VB 8827 333 7 the the DT 8827 333 8 book book NN 8827 333 9 to to IN 8827 333 10 Paul Paul NNP 8827 333 11 , , , 8827 333 12 nor nor CC 8827 333 13 was be VBD 8827 333 14 it -PRON- PRP 8827 333 15 until until IN 8827 333 16 the the DT 8827 333 17 seventh seventh JJ 8827 333 18 century century NN 8827 333 19 that that WDT 8827 333 20 the the DT 8827 333 21 tendency tendency NN 8827 333 22 to to TO 8827 333 23 do do VB 8827 333 24 this this DT 8827 333 25 , , , 8827 333 26 derived derive VBN 8827 333 27 from from IN 8827 333 28 Jerome Jerome NNP 8827 333 29 , , , 8827 333 30 swelled swell VBD 8827 333 31 into into IN 8827 333 32 an an DT 8827 333 33 ecclesiastical ecclesiastical JJ 8827 333 34 practice practice NN 8827 333 35 . . . 8827 334 1 From from IN 8827 334 2 the the DT 8827 334 3 book book NN 8827 334 4 itself -PRON- PRP 8827 334 5 we -PRON- PRP 8827 334 6 see see VBP 8827 334 7 that that IN 8827 334 8 the the DT 8827 334 9 author author NN 8827 334 10 must must MD 8827 334 11 have have VB 8827 334 12 been be VBN 8827 334 13 a a DT 8827 334 14 Jew Jew NNP 8827 334 15 and and CC 8827 334 16 a a DT 8827 334 17 Hellenist Hellenist NNP 8827 334 18 , , , 8827 334 19 familiar familiar JJ 8827 334 20 with with IN 8827 334 21 Philo Philo NNP 8827 334 22 as as RB 8827 334 23 well well RB 8827 334 24 as as IN 8827 334 25 with with IN 8827 334 26 the the DT 8827 334 27 Old Old NNP 8827 334 28 Testament Testament NNP 8827 334 29 , , , 8827 334 30 a a DT 8827 334 31 friend friend NN 8827 334 32 of of IN 8827 334 33 Timothy Timothy NNP 8827 334 34 and and CC 8827 334 35 well well RB 8827 334 36 - - HYPH 8827 334 37 known know VBN 8827 334 38 to to IN 8827 334 39 many many JJ 8827 334 40 of of IN 8827 334 41 those those DT 8827 334 42 whom whom WP 8827 334 43 he -PRON- PRP 8827 334 44 addressed address VBD 8827 334 45 , , , 8827 334 46 and and CC 8827 334 47 not not RB 8827 334 48 an an DT 8827 334 49 Apostle apostle NN 8827 334 50 but but CC 8827 334 51 decidedly decidedly RB 8827 334 52 acquainted acquaint VBN 8827 334 53 with with IN 8827 334 54 Apostolic Apostolic NNP 8827 334 55 thoughts thought NNS 8827 334 56 ; ; : 8827 334 57 and and CC 8827 334 58 that that IN 8827 334 59 he -PRON- PRP 8827 334 60 not not RB 8827 334 61 only only RB 8827 334 62 wrote write VBD 8827 334 63 before before IN 8827 334 64 the the DT 8827 334 65 destruction destruction NN 8827 334 66 of of IN 8827 334 67 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 334 68 but but CC 8827 334 69 apparently apparently RB 8827 334 70 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 334 71 was be VBD 8827 334 72 never never RB 8827 334 73 in in IN 8827 334 74 Palestine Palestine NNP 8827 334 75 . . . 8827 335 1 The the DT 8827 335 2 name name NN 8827 335 3 of of IN 8827 335 4 Barnabas Barnabas NNP 8827 335 5 , , , 8827 335 6 and and CC 8827 335 7 also also RB 8827 335 8 that that DT 8827 335 9 of of IN 8827 335 10 Priscilla Priscilla NNP 8827 335 11 , , , 8827 335 12 has have VBZ 8827 335 13 been be VBN 8827 335 14 suggested suggest VBN 8827 335 15 , , , 8827 335 16 but but CC 8827 335 17 in in IN 8827 335 18 reality reality NN 8827 335 19 all all PDT 8827 335 20 these these DT 8827 335 21 distinctive distinctive JJ 8827 335 22 marks mark NNS 8827 335 23 appear appear VBP 8827 335 24 to to TO 8827 335 25 be be VB 8827 335 26 found find VBN 8827 335 27 only only RB 8827 335 28 in in IN 8827 335 29 Apollos Apollos NNP 8827 335 30 . . . 8827 336 1 So so IN 8827 336 2 that that IN 8827 336 3 with with IN 8827 336 4 Luther Luther NNP 8827 336 5 , , , 8827 336 6 and and CC 8827 336 7 not not RB 8827 336 8 a a DT 8827 336 9 few few JJ 8827 336 10 modern modern JJ 8827 336 11 scholars scholar NNS 8827 336 12 , , , 8827 336 13 we -PRON- PRP 8827 336 14 must must MD 8827 336 15 either either CC 8827 336 16 attribute attribute VB 8827 336 17 it -PRON- PRP 8827 336 18 to to IN 8827 336 19 him -PRON- PRP 8827 336 20 or or CC 8827 336 21 give give VB 8827 336 22 up up RP 8827 336 23 the the DT 8827 336 24 quest quest NN 8827 336 25 . . . 8827 337 1 There there EX 8827 337 2 has have VBZ 8827 337 3 never never RB 8827 337 4 been be VBN 8827 337 5 any any DT 8827 337 6 question question NN 8827 337 7 as as IN 8827 337 8 to to IN 8827 337 9 the the DT 8827 337 10 canonicity canonicity NN 8827 337 11 of of IN 8827 337 12 this this DT 8827 337 13 Letter letter NN 8827 337 14 , , , 8827 337 15 nor nor CC 8827 337 16 can can MD 8827 337 17 there there EX 8827 337 18 be be VB 8827 337 19 any any DT 8827 337 20 doubt doubt NN 8827 337 21 as as IN 8827 337 22 to to IN 8827 337 23 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 337 24 perennial perennial JJ 8827 337 25 value value NN 8827 337 26 to to IN 8827 337 27 the the DT 8827 337 28 Church Church NNP 8827 337 29 of of IN 8827 337 30 Christ Christ NNP 8827 337 31 . . . 8827 338 1 Where where WRB 8827 338 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 338 3 was be VBD 8827 338 4 written write VBN 8827 338 5 can can MD 8827 338 6 not not RB 8827 338 7 be be VB 8827 338 8 decided decide VBN 8827 338 9 . . . 8827 339 1 " " `` 8827 339 2 The the DT 8827 339 3 brethren brother NNS 8827 339 4 from from IN 8827 339 5 Italy Italy NNP 8827 339 6 " " '' 8827 339 7 ( ( -LRB- 8827 339 8 13:24 13:24 CD 8827 339 9 ) ) -RRB- 8827 339 10 proves prove VBZ 8827 339 11 nothing nothing NN 8827 339 12 . . . 8827 340 1 Nor nor CC 8827 340 2 is be VBZ 8827 340 3 it -PRON- PRP 8827 340 4 possible possible JJ 8827 340 5 to to TO 8827 340 6 decide decide VB 8827 340 7 to to TO 8827 340 8 whom whom WP 8827 340 9 it -PRON- PRP 8827 340 10 was be VBD 8827 340 11 sent send VBN 8827 340 12 . . . 8827 341 1 " " `` 8827 341 2 The the DT 8827 341 3 Hebrews Hebrews NNPS 8827 341 4 , , , 8827 341 5 " " '' 8827 341 6 to to TO 8827 341 7 whom whom WP 8827 341 8 it -PRON- PRP 8827 341 9 was be VBD 8827 341 10 addressed address VBN 8827 341 11 , , , 8827 341 12 may may MD 8827 341 13 have have VB 8827 341 14 been be VBN 8827 341 15 resident resident JJ 8827 341 16 in in IN 8827 341 17 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 341 18 , , , 8827 341 19 Alexandria Alexandria NNP 8827 341 20 , , , 8827 341 21 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 341 22 , , , 8827 341 23 or or CC 8827 341 24 Rome Rome NNP 8827 341 25 . . . 8827 342 1 The the DT 8827 342 2 most most RBS 8827 342 3 remarkable remarkable JJ 8827 342 4 feature feature NN 8827 342 5 of of IN 8827 342 6 the the DT 8827 342 7 Letter Letter NNP 8827 342 8 is be VBZ 8827 342 9 manifestly manifestly RB 8827 342 10 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 342 11 references reference NNS 8827 342 12 to to IN 8827 342 13 the the DT 8827 342 14 old old JJ 8827 342 15 Covenant Covenant NNP 8827 342 16 . . . 8827 343 1 Here here RB 8827 343 2 there there EX 8827 343 3 is be VBZ 8827 343 4 a a DT 8827 343 5 mingling mingling NN 8827 343 6 of of IN 8827 343 7 reverence reverence NN 8827 343 8 and and CC 8827 343 9 iconoclasm iconoclasm NN 8827 343 10 . . . 8827 344 1 The the DT 8827 344 2 unquestionably unquestionably RB 8827 344 3 divine divine JJ 8827 344 4 origin origin NN 8827 344 5 of of IN 8827 344 6 the the DT 8827 344 7 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 344 8 dispensation dispensation NN 8827 344 9 is be VBZ 8827 344 10 made make VBN 8827 344 11 use use NN 8827 344 12 of of IN 8827 344 13 for for IN 8827 344 14 laying lay VBG 8827 344 15 emphasis emphasis NN 8827 344 16 upon upon IN 8827 344 17 the the DT 8827 344 18 infinitely infinitely RB 8827 344 19 superior superior JJ 8827 344 20 glory glory NN 8827 344 21 of of IN 8827 344 22 the the DT 8827 344 23 Christian christian JJ 8827 344 24 order order NN 8827 344 25 . . . 8827 345 1 Thus thus RB 8827 345 2 an an DT 8827 345 3 _ _ NNP 8827 345 4 a a DT 8827 345 5 fortiori fortiori NN 8827 345 6 _ _ NNP 8827 345 7 argument argument NN 8827 345 8 pervades pervade VBZ 8827 345 9 the the DT 8827 345 10 whole whole NN 8827 345 11 --if --if : 8827 345 12 the the DT 8827 345 13 shadow shadow NN 8827 345 14 was be VBD 8827 345 15 divine divine JJ 8827 345 16 , , , 8827 345 17 how how WRB 8827 345 18 much much RB 8827 345 19 more more JJR 8827 345 20 must must MD 8827 345 21 the the DT 8827 345 22 substance substance NN 8827 345 23 be be VB 8827 345 24 ! ! . 8827 346 1 " " `` 8827 346 2 The the DT 8827 346 3 language language NN 8827 346 4 of of IN 8827 346 5 the the DT 8827 346 6 Epistle Epistle NNP 8827 346 7 , , , 8827 346 8 both both CC 8827 346 9 in in IN 8827 346 10 vocabulary vocabulary NN 8827 346 11 and and CC 8827 346 12 style style NN 8827 346 13 , , , 8827 346 14 is be VBZ 8827 346 15 purer purer NN 8827 346 16 and and CC 8827 346 17 more more RBR 8827 346 18 vigorous vigorous JJ 8827 346 19 than than IN 8827 346 20 that that DT 8827 346 21 of of IN 8827 346 22 any any DT 8827 346 23 other other JJ 8827 346 24 book book NN 8827 346 25 of of IN 8827 346 26 the the DT 8827 346 27 New New NNP 8827 346 28 Testament Testament NNP 8827 346 29 " " '' 8827 346 30 ( ( -LRB- 8827 346 31 Westcott Westcott NNP 8827 346 32 ) ) -RRB- 8827 346 33 . . . 8827 347 1 James James NNP 8827 347 2 's 's POS 8827 347 3 Letter Letter NNP 8827 347 4 Four Four NNP 8827 347 5 persons person NNS 8827 347 6 bearing bear VBG 8827 347 7 the the DT 8827 347 8 name name NN 8827 347 9 of of IN 8827 347 10 ' ' `` 8827 347 11 James James NNP 8827 347 12 ' ' '' 8827 347 13 are be VBP 8827 347 14 mentioned mention VBN 8827 347 15 in in IN 8827 347 16 the the DT 8827 347 17 New New NNP 8827 347 18 Testament Testament NNP 8827 347 19 . . . 8827 348 1 ( ( -LRB- 8827 348 2 1 1 LS 8827 348 3 ) ) -RRB- 8827 348 4 The the DT 8827 348 5 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 348 6 , , , 8827 348 7 the the DT 8827 348 8 son son NN 8827 348 9 of of IN 8827 348 10 Zabdi Zabdi NNP 8827 348 11 . . . 8827 349 1 ( ( -LRB- 8827 349 2 2 2 LS 8827 349 3 ) ) -RRB- 8827 349 4 The the DT 8827 349 5 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 349 6 , , , 8827 349 7 the the DT 8827 349 8 son son NN 8827 349 9 of of IN 8827 349 10 Alphaeus Alphaeus NNP 8827 349 11 . . . 8827 350 1 ( ( -LRB- 8827 350 2 3 3 LS 8827 350 3 ) ) -RRB- 8827 350 4 The the DT 8827 350 5 son son NN 8827 350 6 of of IN 8827 350 7 Mary Mary NNP 8827 350 8 the the DT 8827 350 9 wife wife NN 8827 350 10 of of IN 8827 350 11 Clopas Clopas NNP 8827 350 12 . . . 8827 351 1 ( ( -LRB- 8827 351 2 4 4 LS 8827 351 3 ) ) -RRB- 8827 351 4 The the DT 8827 351 5 Lord Lord NNP 8827 351 6 's 's POS 8827 351 7 brother brother NN 8827 351 8 , , , 8827 351 9 mentioned mention VBD 8827 351 10 as as IN 8827 351 11 such such JJ 8827 351 12 along along IN 8827 351 13 with with IN 8827 351 14 Joses Joses NNP 8827 351 15 , , , 8827 351 16 Simon Simon NNP 8827 351 17 and and CC 8827 351 18 Judah Judah NNP 8827 351 19 , , , 8827 351 20 and and CC 8827 351 21 prominent prominent JJ 8827 351 22 in in IN 8827 351 23 the the DT 8827 351 24 Acts Acts NNPS 8827 351 25 ( ( -LRB- 8827 351 26 12:17 12:17 CD 8827 351 27 ; ; : 8827 351 28 15:13 15:13 CD 8827 351 29 ; ; : 8827 351 30 21:18 21:18 CD 8827 351 31 ) ) -RRB- 8827 351 32 . . . 8827 352 1 The the DT 8827 352 2 last last JJ 8827 352 3 - - HYPH 8827 352 4 named name VBN 8827 352 5 was be VBD 8827 352 6 also also RB 8827 352 7 known know VBN 8827 352 8 as as IN 8827 352 9 ' ' '' 8827 352 10 James James NNP 8827 352 11 the the DT 8827 352 12 Just Just NNP 8827 352 13 ' ' '' 8827 352 14 and and CC 8827 352 15 is be VBZ 8827 352 16 represented represent VBN 8827 352 17 by by IN 8827 352 18 tradition tradition NN 8827 352 19 as as IN 8827 352 20 having have VBG 8827 352 21 led lead VBN 8827 352 22 an an DT 8827 352 23 ascetic ascetic JJ 8827 352 24 life life NN 8827 352 25 , , , 8827 352 26 which which WDT 8827 352 27 ended end VBD 8827 352 28 in in IN 8827 352 29 martyrdom martyrdom NN 8827 352 30 . . . 8827 353 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 353 2 was be VBD 8827 353 3 undoubtedly undoubtedly RB 8827 353 4 Bishop Bishop NNP 8827 353 5 , , , 8827 353 6 or or CC 8827 353 7 President President NNP 8827 353 8 , , , 8827 353 9 of of IN 8827 353 10 the the DT 8827 353 11 Church Church NNP 8827 353 12 in in IN 8827 353 13 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 353 14 and and CC 8827 353 15 in in IN 8827 353 16 all all DT 8827 353 17 probability probability NN 8827 353 18 this this DT 8827 353 19 Letter letter NN 8827 353 20 was be VBD 8827 353 21 written write VBN 8827 353 22 by by IN 8827 353 23 him -PRON- PRP 8827 353 24 from from IN 8827 353 25 that that DT 8827 353 26 city city NN 8827 353 27 . . . 8827 354 1 There there EX 8827 354 2 has have VBZ 8827 354 3 been be VBN 8827 354 4 some some DT 8827 354 5 difference difference NN 8827 354 6 of of IN 8827 354 7 opinion opinion NN 8827 354 8 as as IN 8827 354 9 to to IN 8827 354 10 the the DT 8827 354 11 date date NN 8827 354 12 of of IN 8827 354 13 the the DT 8827 354 14 book book NN 8827 354 15 . . . 8827 355 1 The the DT 8827 355 2 majority majority NN 8827 355 3 of of IN 8827 355 4 scholars scholar NNS 8827 355 5 insist insist VBP 8827 355 6 that that IN 8827 355 7 both both CC 8827 355 8 the the DT 8827 355 9 internal internal JJ 8827 355 10 and and CC 8827 355 11 external external JJ 8827 355 12 evidence evidence NN 8827 355 13 point point NN 8827 355 14 to to IN 8827 355 15 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 355 16 having have VBG 8827 355 17 been be VBN 8827 355 18 written write VBN 8827 355 19 between between IN 8827 355 20 44 44 CD 8827 355 21 and and CC 8827 355 22 50 50 CD 8827 355 23 A. a. NN 8827 355 24 D. D. NNP 8827 355 25 , , , 8827 355 26 before before IN 8827 355 27 the the DT 8827 355 28 earliest early JJS 8827 355 29 of of IN 8827 355 30 Paul Paul NNP 8827 355 31 's 's POS 8827 355 32 Letters letter NNS 8827 355 33 . . . 8827 356 1 But but CC 8827 356 2 , , , 8827 356 3 on on IN 8827 356 4 the the DT 8827 356 5 other other JJ 8827 356 6 hand hand NN 8827 356 7 , , , 8827 356 8 the the DT 8827 356 9 solemn solemn JJ 8827 356 10 emphasis emphasis NN 8827 356 11 which which WDT 8827 356 12 the the DT 8827 356 13 author author NN 8827 356 14 lays lay VBZ 8827 356 15 upon upon IN 8827 356 16 the the DT 8827 356 17 immediateness immediateness NN 8827 356 18 of of IN 8827 356 19 the the DT 8827 356 20 Lord Lord NNP 8827 356 21 's 's POS 8827 356 22 Return Return NNP 8827 356 23 ( ( -LRB- 8827 356 24 5:7,8,9 5:7,8,9 CD 8827 356 25 ) ) -RRB- 8827 356 26 may may MD 8827 356 27 be be VB 8827 356 28 regarded regard VBN 8827 356 29 as as IN 8827 356 30 a a DT 8827 356 31 moral moral JJ 8827 356 32 proof proof NN 8827 356 33 of of IN 8827 356 34 a a DT 8827 356 35 date date NN 8827 356 36 very very RB 8827 356 37 much much RB 8827 356 38 nearer nearer IN 8827 356 39 the the DT 8827 356 40 winding winding NN 8827 356 41 up up RP 8827 356 42 of of IN 8827 356 43 the the DT 8827 356 44 Mosaic Mosaic NNP 8827 356 45 dispensation dispensation NN 8827 356 46 in in IN 8827 356 47 70 70 CD 8827 356 48 A. a. NN 8827 356 49 D. D. NNP 8827 356 50 The the DT 8827 356 51 Letter Letter NNP 8827 356 52 may may MD 8827 356 53 have have VB 8827 356 54 been be VBN 8827 356 55 a a DT 8827 356 56 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 356 57 one one NN 8827 356 58 , , , 8827 356 59 addressed address VBD 8827 356 60 to to IN 8827 356 61 the the DT 8827 356 62 Christian christian JJ 8827 356 63 converts convert NNS 8827 356 64 from from IN 8827 356 65 Judaism Judaism NNP 8827 356 66 who who WP 8827 356 67 were be VBD 8827 356 68 scattered scatter VBN 8827 356 69 abroad abroad RB 8827 356 70 , , , 8827 356 71 within within IN 8827 356 72 or or CC 8827 356 73 beyond beyond IN 8827 356 74 the the DT 8827 356 75 limits limit NNS 8827 356 76 of of IN 8827 356 77 the the DT 8827 356 78 Roman Roman NNP 8827 356 79 Empire Empire NNP 8827 356 80 . . . 8827 357 1 Luther Luther NNP 8827 357 2 deemed deem VBD 8827 357 3 it -PRON- PRP 8827 357 4 " " `` 8827 357 5 an an DT 8827 357 6 Epistle Epistle NNP 8827 357 7 of of IN 8827 357 8 straw straw NN 8827 357 9 , , , 8827 357 10 " " '' 8827 357 11 by by IN 8827 357 12 reason reason NN 8827 357 13 of of IN 8827 357 14 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 357 15 insistence insistence NN 8827 357 16 upon upon IN 8827 357 17 the the DT 8827 357 18 vital vital JJ 8827 357 19 importance importance NN 8827 357 20 of of IN 8827 357 21 ' ' `` 8827 357 22 works work NNS 8827 357 23 . . . 8827 357 24 ' ' '' 8827 358 1 But but CC 8827 358 2 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 358 3 practical practical JJ 8827 358 4 ideal ideal NN 8827 358 5 assumes assume VBZ 8827 358 6 the the DT 8827 358 7 same same JJ 8827 358 8 basis basis NN 8827 358 9 of of IN 8827 358 10 Christian christian JJ 8827 358 11 faith faith NN 8827 358 12 as as IN 8827 358 13 is be VBZ 8827 358 14 found find VBN 8827 358 15 in in IN 8827 358 16 the the DT 8827 358 17 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 358 18 of of IN 8827 358 19 Paul Paul NNP 8827 358 20 . . . 8827 359 1 The the DT 8827 359 2 opening open VBG 8827 359 3 references reference NNS 8827 359 4 to to IN 8827 359 5 severe severe JJ 8827 359 6 trial trial NN 8827 359 7 seem seem VB 8827 359 8 to to TO 8827 359 9 show show VB 8827 359 10 that that IN 8827 359 11 the the DT 8827 359 12 persecution persecution NN 8827 359 13 begun begin VBN 8827 359 14 by by IN 8827 359 15 Herod Herod NNP 8827 359 16 Agrippa Agrippa NNP 8827 359 17 had have VBD 8827 359 18 already already RB 8827 359 19 been be VBN 8827 359 20 repeated repeat VBN 8827 359 21 elsewhere elsewhere RB 8827 359 22 . . . 8827 360 1 If if IN 8827 360 2 the the DT 8827 360 3 later later JJ 8827 360 4 date date NN 8827 360 5 of of IN 8827 360 6 the the DT 8827 360 7 book book NN 8827 360 8 be be VB 8827 360 9 admitted admit VBN 8827 360 10 , , , 8827 360 11 the the DT 8827 360 12 persecution persecution NN 8827 360 13 must must MD 8827 360 14 then then RB 8827 360 15 , , , 8827 360 16 of of IN 8827 360 17 course course NN 8827 360 18 , , , 8827 360 19 have have VBP 8827 360 20 been be VBN 8827 360 21 that that IN 8827 360 22 under under IN 8827 360 23 Nero Nero NNP 8827 360 24 . . . 8827 361 1 Peter Peter NNP 8827 361 2 's 's POS 8827 361 3 First First NNP 8827 361 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 361 5 The the DT 8827 361 6 state state NN 8827 361 7 of of IN 8827 361 8 things thing NNS 8827 361 9 described describe VBN 8827 361 10 in in IN 8827 361 11 this this DT 8827 361 12 Letter letter NN 8827 361 13 answers answer VBZ 8827 361 14 to to IN 8827 361 15 what what WP 8827 361 16 we -PRON- PRP 8827 361 17 find find VBP 8827 361 18 in in IN 8827 361 19 the the DT 8827 361 20 first first JJ 8827 361 21 Letter letter NN 8827 361 22 to to IN 8827 361 23 Timothy Timothy NNP 8827 361 24 , , , 8827 361 25 and and CC 8827 361 26 points point VBZ 8827 361 27 to to IN 8827 361 28 the the DT 8827 361 29 same same JJ 8827 361 30 period period NN 8827 361 31 . . . 8827 362 1 The the DT 8827 362 2 " " `` 8827 362 3 fiery fiery JJ 8827 362 4 trial trial NN 8827 362 5 " " `` 8827 362 6 referred refer VBD 8827 362 7 to to IN 8827 362 8 is be VBZ 8827 362 9 probably probably RB 8827 362 10 the the DT 8827 362 11 persecution persecution NN 8827 362 12 which which WDT 8827 362 13 , , , 8827 362 14 begun begin VBN 8827 362 15 by by IN 8827 362 16 Nero Nero NNP 8827 362 17 , , , 8827 362 18 in in IN 8827 362 19 64 64 CD 8827 362 20 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 362 21 , , , 8827 362 22 in in IN 8827 362 23 order order NN 8827 362 24 to to TO 8827 362 25 divert divert VB 8827 362 26 attention attention NN 8827 362 27 from from IN 8827 362 28 himself -PRON- PRP 8827 362 29 , , , 8827 362 30 was be VBD 8827 362 31 continued continue VBN 8827 362 32 throughout throughout IN 8827 362 33 the the DT 8827 362 34 Roman Roman NNP 8827 362 35 Empire Empire NNP 8827 362 36 . . . 8827 363 1 The the DT 8827 363 2 Letter letter NN 8827 363 3 seems seem VBZ 8827 363 4 to to TO 8827 363 5 be be VB 8827 363 6 primarily primarily RB 8827 363 7 addressed address VBN 8827 363 8 to to IN 8827 363 9 those those DT 8827 363 10 who who WP 8827 363 11 regarded regard VBD 8827 363 12 Peter Peter NNP 8827 363 13 as as IN 8827 363 14 the the DT 8827 363 15 Apostle apostle NN 8827 363 16 to to IN 8827 363 17 the the DT 8827 363 18 Jews Jews NNPS 8827 363 19 , , , 8827 363 20 although although IN 8827 363 21 it -PRON- PRP 8827 363 22 is be VBZ 8827 363 23 manifest manifest JJ 8827 363 24 that that IN 8827 363 25 he -PRON- PRP 8827 363 26 did do VBD 8827 363 27 not not RB 8827 363 28 think think VB 8827 363 29 of of IN 8827 363 30 these these DT 8827 363 31 alone alone JJ 8827 363 32 . . . 8827 364 1 The the DT 8827 364 2 fact fact NN 8827 364 3 that that IN 8827 364 4 it -PRON- PRP 8827 364 5 is be VBZ 8827 364 6 " " `` 8827 364 7 full full JJ 8827 364 8 of of IN 8827 364 9 Pauline Pauline NNP 8827 364 10 thought thought NN 8827 364 11 and and CC 8827 364 12 Pauline pauline JJ 8827 364 13 language language NN 8827 364 14 , , , 8827 364 15 " " '' 8827 364 16 is be VBZ 8827 364 17 accounted account VBN 8827 364 18 for for IN 8827 364 19 by by IN 8827 364 20 the the DT 8827 364 21 well well RB 8827 364 22 - - HYPH 8827 364 23 grounded ground VBN 8827 364 24 supposition supposition NN 8827 364 25 that that IN 8827 364 26 Peter Peter NNP 8827 364 27 arrived arrive VBD 8827 364 28 in in IN 8827 364 29 Rome Rome NNP 8827 364 30 shortly shortly RB 8827 364 31 before before IN 8827 364 32 Paul Paul NNP 8827 364 33 was be VBD 8827 364 34 released release VBN 8827 364 35 . . . 8827 365 1 So so RB 8827 365 2 that that IN 8827 365 3 this this DT 8827 365 4 Letter letter NN 8827 365 5 , , , 8827 365 6 probably probably RB 8827 365 7 written write VBN 8827 365 8 about about RB 8827 365 9 65 65 CD 8827 365 10 - - SYM 8827 365 11 66 66 CD 8827 365 12 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 365 13 , , , 8827 365 14 was be VBD 8827 365 15 definitely definitely RB 8827 365 16 intended intend VBN 8827 365 17 to to TO 8827 365 18 set set VB 8827 365 19 before before IN 8827 365 20 the the DT 8827 365 21 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 365 22 of of IN 8827 365 23 Roman Roman NNP 8827 365 24 Asia Asia NNP 8827 365 25 " " '' 8827 365 26 the the DT 8827 365 27 inspiring inspiring JJ 8827 365 28 vision vision NN 8827 365 29 of of IN 8827 365 30 the the DT 8827 365 31 two two CD 8827 365 32 Apostles apostle NNS 8827 365 33 working work VBG 8827 365 34 and and CC 8827 365 35 planning plan VBG 8827 365 36 together together RB 8827 365 37 in in IN 8827 365 38 the the DT 8827 365 39 capital capital NN 8827 365 40 . . . 8827 365 41 " " '' 8827 366 1 This this DT 8827 366 2 would would MD 8827 366 3 be be VB 8827 366 4 at at IN 8827 366 5 once once RB 8827 366 6 the the DT 8827 366 7 clearest clear JJS 8827 366 8 lesson lesson NN 8827 366 9 the the DT 8827 366 10 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 366 11 could could MD 8827 366 12 have have VB 8827 366 13 concerning concern VBG 8827 366 14 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 366 15 unity unity NN 8827 366 16 , , , 8827 366 17 and and CC 8827 366 18 a a DT 8827 366 19 great great JJ 8827 366 20 encouragement encouragement NN 8827 366 21 to to IN 8827 366 22 those those DT 8827 366 23 then then RB 8827 366 24 undergoing undergo VBG 8827 366 25 tribulation tribulation NN 8827 366 26 and and CC 8827 366 27 persecution persecution NN 8827 366 28 on on IN 8827 366 29 behalf behalf NN 8827 366 30 of of IN 8827 366 31 Christ Christ NNP 8827 366 32 . . . 8827 367 1 Peter Peter NNP 8827 367 2 's 's POS 8827 367 3 Second Second NNP 8827 367 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 367 5 It -PRON- PRP 8827 367 6 is be VBZ 8827 367 7 impossible impossible JJ 8827 367 8 to to TO 8827 367 9 speak speak VB 8827 367 10 with with IN 8827 367 11 any any DT 8827 367 12 certainty certainty NN 8827 367 13 as as IN 8827 367 14 to to IN 8827 367 15 either either CC 8827 367 16 the the DT 8827 367 17 date date NN 8827 367 18 or or CC 8827 367 19 the the DT 8827 367 20 authorship authorship NN 8827 367 21 of of IN 8827 367 22 this this DT 8827 367 23 Letter Letter NNP 8827 367 24 . . . 8827 368 1 From from IN 8827 368 2 the the DT 8827 368 3 beginning beginning NN 8827 368 4 there there EX 8827 368 5 have have VBP 8827 368 6 been be VBN 8827 368 7 doubts doubt NNS 8827 368 8 as as IN 8827 368 9 to to IN 8827 368 10 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 368 11 genuineness genuineness NN 8827 368 12 and and CC 8827 368 13 canonicity canonicity NN 8827 368 14 , , , 8827 368 15 and and CC 8827 368 16 these these DT 8827 368 17 are be VBP 8827 368 18 represented represent VBN 8827 368 19 to to IN 8827 368 20 - - HYPH 8827 368 21 day day NN 8827 368 22 in in IN 8827 368 23 the the DT 8827 368 24 differing differ VBG 8827 368 25 judgements judgement NNS 8827 368 26 of of IN 8827 368 27 critics critic NNS 8827 368 28 equally equally RB 8827 368 29 able able JJ 8827 368 30 and and CC 8827 368 31 sincere sincere JJ 8827 368 32 . . . 8827 369 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 369 2 has have VBZ 8827 369 3 , , , 8827 369 4 however however RB 8827 369 5 , , , 8827 369 6 unquestionably unquestionably RB 8827 369 7 had have VBD 8827 369 8 a a DT 8827 369 9 place place NN 8827 369 10 in in IN 8827 369 11 the the DT 8827 369 12 canon canon NN 8827 369 13 of of IN 8827 369 14 the the DT 8827 369 15 New New NNP 8827 369 16 Testament Testament NNP 8827 369 17 since since IN 8827 369 18 the the DT 8827 369 19 Council Council NNP 8827 369 20 of of IN 8827 369 21 Laodicea Laodicea NNP 8827 369 22 in in IN 8827 369 23 372 372 CD 8827 369 24 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 369 25 , , , 8827 369 26 and and CC 8827 369 27 there there EX 8827 369 28 is be VBZ 8827 369 29 certainly certainly RB 8827 369 30 no no DT 8827 369 31 such such JJ 8827 369 32 decisive decisive JJ 8827 369 33 evidence evidence NN 8827 369 34 against against IN 8827 369 35 it -PRON- PRP 8827 369 36 as as IN 8827 369 37 to to TO 8827 369 38 warrant warrant VB 8827 369 39 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 369 40 omitting omit VBG 8827 369 41 it -PRON- PRP 8827 369 42 from from IN 8827 369 43 the the DT 8827 369 44 New New NNP 8827 369 45 Testament Testament NNP 8827 369 46 . . . 8827 370 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 370 2 would would MD 8827 370 3 appear appear VB 8827 370 4 that that IN 8827 370 5 the the DT 8827 370 6 writer writer NN 8827 370 7 , , , 8827 370 8 whoever whoever WP 8827 370 9 he -PRON- PRP 8827 370 10 was be VBD 8827 370 11 , , , 8827 370 12 had have VBD 8827 370 13 seen see VBN 8827 370 14 the the DT 8827 370 15 Letter Letter NNP 8827 370 16 from from IN 8827 370 17 Jude Jude NNP 8827 370 18 , , , 8827 370 19 and and CC 8827 370 20 bore bear VBD 8827 370 21 it -PRON- PRP 8827 370 22 in in IN 8827 370 23 mind mind NN 8827 370 24 in in IN 8827 370 25 this this DT 8827 370 26 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 370 27 plea plea NN 8827 370 28 for for IN 8827 370 29 such such JJ 8827 370 30 character character NN 8827 370 31 and and CC 8827 370 32 conduct conduct VB 8827 370 33 on on IN 8827 370 34 the the DT 8827 370 35 part part NN 8827 370 36 of of IN 8827 370 37 believers believer NNS 8827 370 38 as as IN 8827 370 39 were be VBD 8827 370 40 worthy worthy JJ 8827 370 41 of of IN 8827 370 42 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 370 43 faith faith NN 8827 370 44 and and CC 8827 370 45 would would MD 8827 370 46 prepare prepare VB 8827 370 47 them -PRON- PRP 8827 370 48 for for IN 8827 370 49 the the DT 8827 370 50 Coming Coming NNP 8827 370 51 of of IN 8827 370 52 the the DT 8827 370 53 Lord Lord NNP 8827 370 54 . . . 8827 371 1 The the DT 8827 371 2 whole whole JJ 8827 371 3 Letter letter NN 8827 371 4 constitutes constitute VBZ 8827 371 5 an an DT 8827 371 6 earnest earnest JJ 8827 371 7 appeal appeal NN 8827 371 8 for for IN 8827 371 9 practical practical JJ 8827 371 10 holiness holiness NN 8827 371 11 . . . 8827 372 1 John John NNP 8827 372 2 's 's POS 8827 372 3 First First NNP 8827 372 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 372 5 That that IN 8827 372 6 this this DT 8827 372 7 Letter letter NN 8827 372 8 was be VBD 8827 372 9 the the DT 8827 372 10 actual actual JJ 8827 372 11 work work NN 8827 372 12 of of IN 8827 372 13 the the DT 8827 372 14 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 372 15 John John NNP 8827 372 16 , , , 8827 372 17 the the DT 8827 372 18 son son NN 8827 372 19 of of IN 8827 372 20 Zabdi Zabdi NNP 8827 372 21 , , , 8827 372 22 has have VBZ 8827 372 23 been be VBN 8827 372 24 abundantly abundantly RB 8827 372 25 testified testify VBN 8827 372 26 from from IN 8827 372 27 the the DT 8827 372 28 very very RB 8827 372 29 earliest early JJS 8827 372 30 times time NNS 8827 372 31 . . . 8827 373 1 Some some DT 8827 373 2 modern modern JJ 8827 373 3 critics critic NNS 8827 373 4 have have VBP 8827 373 5 doubted doubt VBN 8827 373 6 it -PRON- PRP 8827 373 7 , , , 8827 373 8 on on IN 8827 373 9 the the DT 8827 373 10 ground ground NN 8827 373 11 of of IN 8827 373 12 internal internal JJ 8827 373 13 evidence evidence NN 8827 373 14 . . . 8827 374 1 But but CC 8827 374 2 a a DT 8827 374 3 calm calm JJ 8827 374 4 survey survey NN 8827 374 5 of of IN 8827 374 6 the the DT 8827 374 7 whole whole JJ 8827 374 8 case case NN 8827 374 9 does do VBZ 8827 374 10 not not RB 8827 374 11 bear bear VB 8827 374 12 out out RP 8827 374 13 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 374 14 objections objection NNS 8827 374 15 . . . 8827 375 1 Dr. Dr. NNP 8827 375 2 Salmon Salmon NNP 8827 375 3 well well RB 8827 375 4 says say VBZ 8827 375 5 that that IN 8827 375 6 no no DT 8827 375 7 explanation explanation NN 8827 375 8 of of IN 8827 375 9 the the DT 8827 375 10 origin origin NN 8827 375 11 of of IN 8827 375 12 the the DT 8827 375 13 Epistle Epistle NNP 8827 375 14 fits fit VBZ 8827 375 15 the the DT 8827 375 16 facts fact NNS 8827 375 17 so so RB 8827 375 18 well well RB 8827 375 19 as as IN 8827 375 20 the the DT 8827 375 21 one one NN 8827 375 22 which which WDT 8827 375 23 has have VBZ 8827 375 24 always always RB 8827 375 25 prevailed prevail VBN 8827 375 26 . . . 8827 376 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 376 2 seems seem VBZ 8827 376 3 to to TO 8827 376 4 have have VB 8827 376 5 been be VBN 8827 376 6 addressed address VBN 8827 376 7 to to IN 8827 376 8 the the DT 8827 376 9 Church Church NNP 8827 376 10 at at IN 8827 376 11 large large JJ 8827 376 12 , , , 8827 376 13 with with IN 8827 376 14 perhaps perhaps RB 8827 376 15 special special JJ 8827 376 16 reference reference NN 8827 376 17 to to IN 8827 376 18 the the DT 8827 376 19 Churches Churches NNPS 8827 376 20 in in IN 8827 376 21 Roman Roman NNP 8827 376 22 Asia Asia NNP 8827 376 23 . . . 8827 377 1 The the DT 8827 377 2 connexion connexion NN 8827 377 3 between between IN 8827 377 4 this this DT 8827 377 5 Letter Letter NNP 8827 377 6 and and CC 8827 377 7 the the DT 8827 377 8 fourth fourth JJ 8827 377 9 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 377 10 is be VBZ 8827 377 11 " " `` 8827 377 12 intimate intimate JJ 8827 377 13 and and CC 8827 377 14 organic organic JJ 8827 377 15 . . . 8827 378 1 The the DT 8827 378 2 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 378 3 is be VBZ 8827 378 4 objective objective JJ 8827 378 5 and and CC 8827 378 6 the the DT 8827 378 7 Epistle Epistle NNP 8827 378 8 subjective subjective JJ 8827 378 9 . . . 8827 379 1 The the DT 8827 379 2 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 379 3 suggests suggest VBZ 8827 379 4 principles principle NNS 8827 379 5 of of IN 8827 379 6 conduct conduct NN 8827 379 7 which which WDT 8827 379 8 the the DT 8827 379 9 Epistle Epistle NNP 8827 379 10 lays lay VBZ 8827 379 11 down down RB 8827 379 12 explicitly explicitly RB 8827 379 13 . . . 8827 380 1 The the DT 8827 380 2 Epistle Epistle NNP 8827 380 3 implies imply VBZ 8827 380 4 facts fact NNS 8827 380 5 which which WDT 8827 380 6 the the DT 8827 380 7 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 380 8 states state NNS 8827 380 9 as as IN 8827 380 10 historically historically RB 8827 380 11 true true JJ 8827 380 12 . . . 8827 380 13 " " '' 8827 381 1 This this DT 8827 381 2 Letter letter NN 8827 381 3 appears appear VBZ 8827 381 4 to to TO 8827 381 5 have have VB 8827 381 6 been be VBN 8827 381 7 written write VBN 8827 381 8 from from IN 8827 381 9 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 381 10 , , , 8827 381 11 and and CC 8827 381 12 critics critic NNS 8827 381 13 have have VBP 8827 381 14 usually usually RB 8827 381 15 assigned assign VBN 8827 381 16 95 95 CD 8827 381 17 A. a. NN 8827 381 18 D. D. NNP 8827 381 19 , , , 8827 381 20 or or CC 8827 381 21 some some DT 8827 381 22 other other JJ 8827 381 23 year year NN 8827 381 24 equally equally RB 8827 381 25 late late RB 8827 381 26 in in IN 8827 381 27 the the DT 8827 381 28 Apostolic Apostolic NNP 8827 381 29 age age NN 8827 381 30 , , , 8827 381 31 as as IN 8827 381 32 the the DT 8827 381 33 probable probable JJ 8827 381 34 date date NN 8827 381 35 of of IN 8827 381 36 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 381 37 composition composition NN 8827 381 38 . . . 8827 382 1 On on IN 8827 382 2 the the DT 8827 382 3 other other JJ 8827 382 4 hand hand NN 8827 382 5 the the DT 8827 382 6 internal internal JJ 8827 382 7 evidence evidence NN 8827 382 8 points point VBZ 8827 382 9 to to IN 8827 382 10 a a DT 8827 382 11 date date NN 8827 382 12 immediately immediately RB 8827 382 13 preceding precede VBG 8827 382 14 the the DT 8827 382 15 destruction destruction NN 8827 382 16 of of IN 8827 382 17 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 382 18 in in IN 8827 382 19 70 70 CD 8827 382 20 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 382 21 See see VB 8827 382 22 2:8 2:8 CD 8827 382 23 ( ( -LRB- 8827 382 24 last last JJ 8827 382 25 clause clause NN 8827 382 26 ) ) -RRB- 8827 382 27 ; ; : 8827 382 28 2:18 2:18 CD 8827 382 29 ; ; : 8827 382 30 4:3 4:3 CD 8827 382 31 ; ; : 8827 382 32 and and CC 8827 382 33 note note VB 8827 382 34 the the DT 8827 382 35 expectation expectation NN 8827 382 36 of of IN 8827 382 37 a a DT 8827 382 38 speedy speedy JJ 8827 382 39 Coming coming NN 8827 382 40 of of IN 8827 382 41 Christ Christ NNP 8827 382 42 ( ( -LRB- 8827 382 43 2:28 2:28 CD 8827 382 44 ; ; : 8827 382 45 3:2)--an 3:2)--an CD 8827 382 46 expectation expectation NN 8827 382 47 which which WDT 8827 382 48 seems seem VBZ 8827 382 49 almost almost RB 8827 382 50 to to TO 8827 382 51 have have VB 8827 382 52 ceased cease VBN 8827 382 53 in in IN 8827 382 54 the the DT 8827 382 55 early early JJ 8827 382 56 Church Church NNP 8827 382 57 after after IN 8827 382 58 that that DT 8827 382 59 date date NN 8827 382 60 . . . 8827 383 1 John John NNP 8827 383 2 's 's POS 8827 383 3 Second Second NNP 8827 383 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 383 5 Although although IN 8827 383 6 we -PRON- PRP 8827 383 7 are be VBP 8827 383 8 unable unable JJ 8827 383 9 to to TO 8827 383 10 fix fix VB 8827 383 11 the the DT 8827 383 12 exact exact JJ 8827 383 13 date date NN 8827 383 14 of of IN 8827 383 15 this this DT 8827 383 16 Letter Letter NNP 8827 383 17 or or CC 8827 383 18 the the DT 8827 383 19 place place NN 8827 383 20 at at IN 8827 383 21 which which WDT 8827 383 22 it -PRON- PRP 8827 383 23 was be VBD 8827 383 24 written write VBN 8827 383 25 , , , 8827 383 26 there there EX 8827 383 27 is be VBZ 8827 383 28 sufficient sufficient JJ 8827 383 29 evidence evidence NN 8827 383 30 , , , 8827 383 31 both both CC 8827 383 32 external external JJ 8827 383 33 and and CC 8827 383 34 internal internal JJ 8827 383 35 , , , 8827 383 36 to to TO 8827 383 37 warrant warrant VB 8827 383 38 our -PRON- PRP$ 8827 383 39 acceptance acceptance NN 8827 383 40 of of IN 8827 383 41 it -PRON- PRP 8827 383 42 as as IN 8827 383 43 a a DT 8827 383 44 genuine genuine JJ 8827 383 45 work work NN 8827 383 46 of of IN 8827 383 47 the the DT 8827 383 48 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 383 49 John John NNP 8827 383 50 . . . 8827 384 1 Some some DT 8827 384 2 have have VBP 8827 384 3 thought think VBN 8827 384 4 that that IN 8827 384 5 the the DT 8827 384 6 " " `` 8827 384 7 lady lady NN 8827 384 8 " " '' 8827 384 9 addressed address VBD 8827 384 10 stands stand VBZ 8827 384 11 for for IN 8827 384 12 an an DT 8827 384 13 unknown unknown JJ 8827 384 14 Church Church NNP 8827 384 15 , , , 8827 384 16 but but CC 8827 384 17 upon upon IN 8827 384 18 careful careful JJ 8827 384 19 consideration consideration NN 8827 384 20 it -PRON- PRP 8827 384 21 appears appear VBZ 8827 384 22 more more RBR 8827 384 23 reasonable reasonable JJ 8827 384 24 and and CC 8827 384 25 natural natural JJ 8827 384 26 to to TO 8827 384 27 regard regard VB 8827 384 28 the the DT 8827 384 29 Letter Letter NNP 8827 384 30 as as IN 8827 384 31 having have VBG 8827 384 32 been be VBN 8827 384 33 a a DT 8827 384 34 private private JJ 8827 384 35 one one NN 8827 384 36 . . . 8827 385 1 It -PRON- PRP 8827 385 2 is be VBZ 8827 385 3 impossible impossible JJ 8827 385 4 to to TO 8827 385 5 discover discover VB 8827 385 6 the the DT 8827 385 7 name name NN 8827 385 8 of of IN 8827 385 9 the the DT 8827 385 10 individual individual NN 8827 385 11 to to IN 8827 385 12 whom whom WP 8827 385 13 it -PRON- PRP 8827 385 14 was be VBD 8827 385 15 sent send VBN 8827 385 16 , , , 8827 385 17 but but CC 8827 385 18 both both CC 8827 385 19 this this DT 8827 385 20 and and CC 8827 385 21 the the DT 8827 385 22 following follow VBG 8827 385 23 Letter letter NN 8827 385 24 may may MD 8827 385 25 be be VB 8827 385 26 taken take VBN 8827 385 27 as as IN 8827 385 28 " " `` 8827 385 29 precious precious JJ 8827 385 30 specimens specimen NNS 8827 385 31 of of IN 8827 385 32 the the DT 8827 385 33 private private JJ 8827 385 34 correspondence correspondence NN 8827 385 35 of of IN 8827 385 36 the the DT 8827 385 37 beloved beloved JJ 8827 385 38 Apostle apostle NN 8827 385 39 . . . 8827 385 40 " " '' 8827 386 1 John John NNP 8827 386 2 's 's POS 8827 386 3 Third Third NNP 8827 386 4 Letter Letter NNP 8827 386 5 There there EX 8827 386 6 can can MD 8827 386 7 be be VB 8827 386 8 no no DT 8827 386 9 doubt doubt NN 8827 386 10 that that IN 8827 386 11 this this DT 8827 386 12 Letter letter NN 8827 386 13 was be VBD 8827 386 14 addressed address VBN 8827 386 15 to to IN 8827 386 16 an an DT 8827 386 17 individual individual JJ 8827 386 18 person person NN 8827 386 19 . . . 8827 387 1 We -PRON- PRP 8827 387 2 can can MD 8827 387 3 not not RB 8827 387 4 affix affix VB 8827 387 5 to to IN 8827 387 6 it -PRON- PRP 8827 387 7 a a DT 8827 387 8 definite definite JJ 8827 387 9 date date NN 8827 387 10 , , , 8827 387 11 or or CC 8827 387 12 place place NN 8827 387 13 , , , 8827 387 14 but but CC 8827 387 15 the the DT 8827 387 16 most most RBS 8827 387 17 natural natural JJ 8827 387 18 supposition supposition NN 8827 387 19 -- -- : 8827 387 20 which which WDT 8827 387 21 there there EX 8827 387 22 is be VBZ 8827 387 23 nothing nothing NN 8827 387 24 to to TO 8827 387 25 contradict contradict VB 8827 387 26 -- -- : 8827 387 27 is be VBZ 8827 387 28 that that IN 8827 387 29 it -PRON- PRP 8827 387 30 came come VBD 8827 387 31 from from IN 8827 387 32 the the DT 8827 387 33 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 387 34 in in IN 8827 387 35 Ephesus Ephesus NNP 8827 387 36 , , , 8827 387 37 about about IN 8827 387 38 the the DT 8827 387 39 same same JJ 8827 387 40 time time NN 8827 387 41 as as IN 8827 387 42 the the DT 8827 387 43 preceding precede VBG 8827 387 44 Letter letter NN 8827 387 45 . . . 8827 388 1 The the DT 8827 388 2 special special JJ 8827 388 3 mention mention NN 8827 388 4 of of IN 8827 388 5 Diotrephes Diotrephes NNP 8827 388 6 and and CC 8827 388 7 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 388 8 behaviour behaviour NN 8827 388 9 points point NNS 8827 388 10 indeed indeed RB 8827 388 11 to to IN 8827 388 12 a a DT 8827 388 13 somewhat somewhat RB 8827 388 14 advanced advanced JJ 8827 388 15 development development NN 8827 388 16 in in IN 8827 388 17 the the DT 8827 388 18 Church Church NNP 8827 388 19 to to TO 8827 388 20 which which WDT 8827 388 21 Galus Galus NNP 8827 388 22 belonged belong VBD 8827 388 23 , , , 8827 388 24 but but CC 8827 388 25 such such JJ 8827 388 26 characters character NNS 8827 388 27 are be VBP 8827 388 28 all all RB 8827 388 29 too too RB 8827 388 30 possible possible JJ 8827 388 31 at at IN 8827 388 32 any any DT 8827 388 33 juncture juncture NN 8827 388 34 to to TO 8827 388 35 afford afford VB 8827 388 36 in in IN 8827 388 37 this this DT 8827 388 38 instance instance NN 8827 388 39 any any DT 8827 388 40 guarantee guarantee NN 8827 388 41 of of IN 8827 388 42 a a DT 8827 388 43 later later JJ 8827 388 44 date date NN 8827 388 45 . . . 8827 389 1 In in IN 8827 389 2 this this DT 8827 389 3 , , , 8827 389 4 as as IN 8827 389 5 in in IN 8827 389 6 the the DT 8827 389 7 preceding precede VBG 8827 389 8 Letters Letters NNPS 8827 389 9 , , , 8827 389 10 the the DT 8827 389 11 writer writer NN 8827 389 12 's 's POS 8827 389 13 great great JJ 8827 389 14 concern concern NN 8827 389 15 is be VBZ 8827 389 16 that that IN 8827 389 17 transcendental transcendental JJ 8827 389 18 truth truth NN 8827 389 19 should should MD 8827 389 20 be be VB 8827 389 21 embodied embody VBN 8827 389 22 in in IN 8827 389 23 practical practical JJ 8827 389 24 holiness holiness NN 8827 389 25 . . . 8827 390 1 Jude Jude NNP 8827 390 2 's 's POS 8827 390 3 Letter Letter NNP 8827 390 4 Of of IN 8827 390 5 the the DT 8827 390 6 time time NN 8827 390 7 and and CC 8827 390 8 place place NN 8827 390 9 of of IN 8827 390 10 the the DT 8827 390 11 composition composition NN 8827 390 12 of of IN 8827 390 13 this this DT 8827 390 14 Letter Letter NNP 8827 390 15 we -PRON- PRP 8827 390 16 know know VBP 8827 390 17 nothing nothing NN 8827 390 18 beyond beyond IN 8827 390 19 what what WP 8827 390 20 may may MD 8827 390 21 be be VB 8827 390 22 inferred infer VBN 8827 390 23 from from IN 8827 390 24 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 390 25 contents content NNS 8827 390 26 . . . 8827 391 1 These these DT 8827 391 2 seem seem VBP 8827 391 3 to to TO 8827 391 4 show show VB 8827 391 5 that that IN 8827 391 6 it -PRON- PRP 8827 391 7 was be VBD 8827 391 8 written write VBN 8827 391 9 in in IN 8827 391 10 Palestine Palestine NNP 8827 391 11 , , , 8827 391 12 and and CC 8827 391 13 the the DT 8827 391 14 absence absence NN 8827 391 15 of of IN 8827 391 16 any any DT 8827 391 17 reference reference NN 8827 391 18 to to IN 8827 391 19 so so RB 8827 391 20 striking strike VBG 8827 391 21 an an DT 8827 391 22 event event NN 8827 391 23 as as IN 8827 391 24 the the DT 8827 391 25 destruction destruction NN 8827 391 26 of of IN 8827 391 27 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 391 28 points point VBZ 8827 391 29 to to IN 8827 391 30 a a DT 8827 391 31 date date NN 8827 391 32 earlier early JJR 8827 391 33 than than IN 8827 391 34 70 70 CD 8827 391 35 A. a. NN 8827 391 36 D. D. NNP 8827 391 37 It -PRON- PRP 8827 391 38 has have VBZ 8827 391 39 , , , 8827 391 40 however however RB 8827 391 41 , , , 8827 391 42 been be VBN 8827 391 43 thought think VBN 8827 391 44 that that IN 8827 391 45 such such PDT 8827 391 46 a a DT 8827 391 47 rebuke rebuke NN 8827 391 48 of of IN 8827 391 49 error error NN 8827 391 50 and and CC 8827 391 51 licentiousness licentiousness NN 8827 391 52 as as IN 8827 391 53 that that DT 8827 391 54 which which WDT 8827 391 55 this this DT 8827 391 56 Letter letter NN 8827 391 57 contains contain VBZ 8827 391 58 can can MD 8827 391 59 only only RB 8827 391 60 apply apply VB 8827 391 61 to to IN 8827 391 62 the the DT 8827 391 63 forms form NNS 8827 391 64 of of IN 8827 391 65 Gnosticism Gnosticism NNP 8827 391 66 known know VBN 8827 391 67 to to TO 8827 391 68 have have VB 8827 391 69 existed exist VBN 8827 391 70 in in IN 8827 391 71 the the DT 8827 391 72 first first JJ 8827 391 73 quarter quarter NN 8827 391 74 of of IN 8827 391 75 the the DT 8827 391 76 second second JJ 8827 391 77 century century NN 8827 391 78 . . . 8827 392 1 But but CC 8827 392 2 there there EX 8827 392 3 is be VBZ 8827 392 4 no no DT 8827 392 5 reason reason NN 8827 392 6 to to TO 8827 392 7 doubt doubt VB 8827 392 8 that that IN 8827 392 9 the the DT 8827 392 10 author author NN 8827 392 11 was be VBD 8827 392 12 the the DT 8827 392 13 man man NN 8827 392 14 he -PRON- PRP 8827 392 15 asserts assert VBZ 8827 392 16 he -PRON- PRP 8827 392 17 was be VBD 8827 392 18 , , , 8827 392 19 the the DT 8827 392 20 brother brother NN 8827 392 21 of of IN 8827 392 22 James James NNP 8827 392 23 , , , 8827 392 24 the the DT 8827 392 25 head head NN 8827 392 26 of of IN 8827 392 27 the the DT 8827 392 28 Church Church NNP 8827 392 29 in in IN 8827 392 30 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 392 31 . . . 8827 393 1 He -PRON- PRP 8827 393 2 was be VBD 8827 393 3 , , , 8827 393 4 therefore therefore RB 8827 393 5 , , , 8827 393 6 not not RB 8827 393 7 an an DT 8827 393 8 Apostle apostle NN 8827 393 9 but but CC 8827 393 10 one one CD 8827 393 11 of of IN 8827 393 12 the the DT 8827 393 13 Lord Lord NNP 8827 393 14 's 's POS 8827 393 15 brothers brother NNS 8827 393 16 . . . 8827 394 1 The the DT 8827 394 2 abiding abide VBG 8827 394 3 value value NN 8827 394 4 of of IN 8827 394 5 the the DT 8827 394 6 Letter Letter NNP 8827 394 7 consists consist VBZ 8827 394 8 in in IN 8827 394 9 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 394 10 severe severe JJ 8827 394 11 condemnation condemnation NN 8827 394 12 of of IN 8827 394 13 merely merely RB 8827 394 14 professional professional JJ 8827 394 15 Christianity Christianity NNP 8827 394 16 , , , 8827 394 17 and and CC 8827 394 18 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 394 19 remarkably remarkably RB 8827 394 20 beautiful beautiful JJ 8827 394 21 doxology doxology NN 8827 394 22 . . . 8827 395 1 The the DT 8827 395 2 Revelation Revelation NNP 8827 395 3 of of IN 8827 395 4 John John NNP 8827 395 5 The The NNP 8827 395 6 Apocalypse Apocalypse NNP 8827 395 7 was be VBD 8827 395 8 written write VBN 8827 395 9 either either CC 8827 395 10 in in IN 8827 395 11 67 67 CD 8827 395 12 , , , 8827 395 13 or or CC 8827 395 14 in in IN 8827 395 15 96 96 CD 8827 395 16 , , , 8827 395 17 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 395 18 An an DT 8827 395 19 oft oft RB 8827 395 20 - - HYPH 8827 395 21 quoted quote VBN 8827 395 22 statement statement NN 8827 395 23 of of IN 8827 395 24 Irenaeus Irenaeus NNP 8827 395 25 that that IN 8827 395 26 it -PRON- PRP 8827 395 27 , , , 8827 395 28 or or CC 8827 395 29 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 395 30 author-- author-- NNS 8827 395 31 there there EX 8827 395 32 is be VBZ 8827 395 33 no no DT 8827 395 34 word word NN 8827 395 35 inserted insert VBN 8827 395 36 to to TO 8827 395 37 indicate indicate VB 8827 395 38 which which WDT 8827 395 39 of of IN 8827 395 40 the the DT 8827 395 41 two two CD 8827 395 42 he -PRON- PRP 8827 395 43 meant--"was meant--"wa VBZ 8827 395 44 seen see VBN 8827 395 45 " " `` 8827 395 46 about about IN 8827 395 47 the the DT 8827 395 48 end end NN 8827 395 49 of of IN 8827 395 50 the the DT 8827 395 51 reign reign NN 8827 395 52 of of IN 8827 395 53 Domitian Domitian NNP 8827 395 54 , , , 8827 395 55 is be VBZ 8827 395 56 regarded regard VBN 8827 395 57 by by IN 8827 395 58 many many JJ 8827 395 59 as as IN 8827 395 60 a a DT 8827 395 61 conclusive conclusive JJ 8827 395 62 proof proof NN 8827 395 63 of of IN 8827 395 64 the the DT 8827 395 65 later later JJ 8827 395 66 date date NN 8827 395 67 . . . 8827 396 1 On on IN 8827 396 2 the the DT 8827 396 3 other other JJ 8827 396 4 hand hand NN 8827 396 5 , , , 8827 396 6 the the DT 8827 396 7 " " `` 8827 396 8 internal internal JJ 8827 396 9 evidence"--the evidence"--the NNP 8827 396 10 evidence evidence NN 8827 396 11 , , , 8827 396 12 that that RB 8827 396 13 is is RB 8827 396 14 , , , 8827 396 15 furnished furnish VBN 8827 396 16 by by IN 8827 396 17 the the DT 8827 396 18 contents content NNS 8827 396 19 of of IN 8827 396 20 the the DT 8827 396 21 book book NN 8827 396 22 itself -PRON- PRP 8827 396 23 -- -- : 8827 396 24 appears appear VBZ 8827 396 25 to to TO 8827 396 26 point point VB 8827 396 27 even even RB 8827 396 28 more more RBR 8827 396 29 unmistakably unmistakably RB 8827 396 30 to to IN 8827 396 31 the the DT 8827 396 32 earlier early JJR 8827 396 33 date date NN 8827 396 34 . . . 8827 397 1 E.g- E.g- NNP 8827 397 2 . . NNP 8827 397 3 , , , 8827 397 4 in in IN 8827 397 5 11:1,2,8 11:1,2,8 NNP 8827 397 6 , , , 8827 397 7 the the DT 8827 397 8 Holy Holy NNP 8827 397 9 City City NNP 8827 397 10 and and CC 8827 397 11 the the DT 8827 397 12 earthly earthly JJ 8827 397 13 Temple Temple NNP 8827 397 14 are be VBP 8827 397 15 spoken speak VBN 8827 397 16 of of IN 8827 397 17 as as IN 8827 397 18 being be VBG 8827 397 19 still still RB 8827 397 20 in in IN 8827 397 21 existence existence NN 8827 397 22 , , , 8827 397 23 and and CC 8827 397 24 as as IN 8827 397 25 about about IN 8827 397 26 to to TO 8827 397 27 be be VB 8827 397 28 trodden tread VBN 8827 397 29 under under IN 8827 397 30 foot foot NN 8827 397 31 by by IN 8827 397 32 the the DT 8827 397 33 Gentiles Gentiles NNPS 8827 397 34 . . . 8827 398 1 The the DT 8827 398 2 language language NN 8827 398 3 of of IN 8827 398 4 the the DT 8827 398 5 book book NN 8827 398 6 has have VBZ 8827 398 7 also also RB 8827 398 8 a a DT 8827 398 9 bearing bearing NN 8827 398 10 upon upon IN 8827 398 11 the the DT 8827 398 12 problem problem NN 8827 398 13 of of IN 8827 398 14 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 398 15 date date NN 8827 398 16 . . . 8827 399 1 Although although IN 8827 399 2 other other JJ 8827 399 3 explanations explanation NNS 8827 399 4 have have VBP 8827 399 5 been be VBN 8827 399 6 suggested suggest VBN 8827 399 7 , , , 8827 399 8 the the DT 8827 399 9 many many JJ 8827 399 10 Hebrew hebrew JJ 8827 399 11 idioms idiom NNS 8827 399 12 that that IN 8827 399 13 it -PRON- PRP 8827 399 14 contains contain VBZ 8827 399 15 as as IN 8827 399 16 compared compare VBN 8827 399 17 with with IN 8827 399 18 the the DT 8827 399 19 much much JJ 8827 399 20 purer purer NN 8827 399 21 Greek Greek NNP 8827 399 22 of of IN 8827 399 23 the the DT 8827 399 24 fourth fourth JJ 8827 399 25 Gospel-- Gospel-- NNP 8827 399 26 which which WDT 8827 399 27 was be VBD 8827 399 28 probably probably RB 8827 399 29 by by IN 8827 399 30 the the DT 8827 399 31 same same JJ 8827 399 32 author author NN 8827 399 33 -- -- : 8827 399 34 seem seem VBP 8827 399 35 to to TO 8827 399 36 indicate indicate VB 8827 399 37 that that IN 8827 399 38 it -PRON- PRP 8827 399 39 was be VBD 8827 399 40 written write VBN 8827 399 41 long long RB 8827 399 42 before before RB 8827 399 43 that that DT 8827 399 44 Gospel Gospel NNP 8827 399 45 , , , 8827 399 46 at at IN 8827 399 47 a a DT 8827 399 48 time time NN 8827 399 49 when when WRB 8827 399 50 the the DT 8827 399 51 Apostle Apostle NNP 8827 399 52 had have VBD 8827 399 53 as as RB 8827 399 54 yet yet RB 8827 399 55 only only RB 8827 399 56 an an DT 8827 399 57 imperfect imperfect JJ 8827 399 58 acquaintance acquaintance NN 8827 399 59 with with IN 8827 399 60 the the DT 8827 399 61 Greek greek JJ 8827 399 62 language language NN 8827 399 63 . . . 8827 400 1 Dr. Dr. NNP 8827 400 2 Stuart Stuart NNP 8827 400 3 Russell Russell NNP 8827 400 4 , , , 8827 400 5 in in IN 8827 400 6 his -PRON- PRP$ 8827 400 7 work work NN 8827 400 8 _ _ NNP 8827 400 9 The the DT 8827 400 10 Parousia Parousia NNP 8827 400 11 _ _ NNP 8827 400 12 , , , 8827 400 13 has have VBZ 8827 400 14 contended contend VBN 8827 400 15 for for IN 8827 400 16 the the DT 8827 400 17 belief belief NN 8827 400 18 that that IN 8827 400 19 the the DT 8827 400 20 fall fall NN 8827 400 21 of of IN 8827 400 22 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 400 23 and and CC 8827 400 24 Judaism Judaism NNP 8827 400 25 in in IN 8827 400 26 70 70 CD 8827 400 27 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 400 28 marked mark VBD 8827 400 29 a a DT 8827 400 30 stupendous stupendous JJ 8827 400 31 epoch epoch NN 8827 400 32 in in IN 8827 400 33 the the DT 8827 400 34 unseen unseen JJ 8827 400 35 world world NN 8827 400 36 , , , 8827 400 37 a a DT 8827 400 38 personal personal JJ 8827 400 39 -- -- : 8827 400 40 although although IN 8827 400 41 unrecorded unrecorded JJ 8827 400 42 -- -- : 8827 400 43 return return NN 8827 400 44 of of IN 8827 400 45 the the DT 8827 400 46 Saviour Saviour NNP 8827 400 47 to to IN 8827 400 48 the the DT 8827 400 49 earth earth NN 8827 400 50 then then RB 8827 400 51 taking take VBG 8827 400 52 place place NN 8827 400 53 ( ( -LRB- 8827 400 54 cp cp NNP 8827 400 55 . . . 8827 401 1 Ac Ac NNP 8827 401 2 7:55 7:55 CD 8827 401 3 ; ; : 8827 401 4 9:7 9:7 CD 8827 401 5 ; ; : 8827 401 6 1Co 1co CD 8827 401 7 9:1 9:1 CD 8827 401 8 ) ) -RRB- 8827 401 9 , , , 8827 401 10 accompanied accompany VBN 8827 401 11 by by IN 8827 401 12 a a DT 8827 401 13 spiritual spiritual JJ 8827 401 14 judgement judgement NN 8827 401 15 of of IN 8827 401 16 bygone bygone JJ 8827 401 17 generations generation NNS 8827 401 18 , , , 8827 401 19 a a DT 8827 401 20 resurrection resurrection NN 8827 401 21 from from IN 8827 401 22 Hades Hades NNP 8827 401 23 to to IN 8827 401 24 Heaven Heaven NNP 8827 401 25 of of IN 8827 401 26 the the DT 8827 401 27 faithful faithful NN 8827 401 28 of of IN 8827 401 29 past past JJ 8827 401 30 ages age NNS 8827 401 31 , , , 8827 401 32 and and CC 8827 401 33 an an DT 8827 401 34 ingathering ingathering NN 8827 401 35 of of IN 8827 401 36 saints saint NNS 8827 401 37 then then RB 8827 401 38 on on IN 8827 401 39 earth earth NN 8827 401 40 into into IN 8827 401 41 the the DT 8827 401 42 Father Father NNP 8827 401 43 's 's POS 8827 401 44 House House NNP 8827 401 45 of of IN 8827 401 46 many many JJ 8827 401 47 mansions mansion NNS 8827 401 48 ( ( -LRB- 8827 401 49 Mt Mt NNP 8827 401 50 24:31 24:31 CD 8827 401 51 ; ; : 8827 401 52 Joh Joh NNP 8827 401 53 14:3 14:3 CD 8827 401 54 ; ; : 8827 401 55 1Th 1th CD 8827 401 56 4:17 4:17 CD 8827 401 57 ; ; : 8827 401 58 2Th 2th CD 8827 401 59 2:1 2:1 CD 8827 401 60 ) ) -RRB- 8827 401 61 . . . 8827 402 1 If if IN 8827 402 2 this this DT 8827 402 3 belief belief NN 8827 402 4 ever ever RB 8827 402 5 obtains obtain VBZ 8827 402 6 general general JJ 8827 402 7 acceptance acceptance NN 8827 402 8 the the DT 8827 402 9 earlier early JJR 8827 402 10 date date NN 8827 402 11 of of IN 8827 402 12 the the DT 8827 402 13 Apocalypse Apocalypse NNP 8827 402 14 will will MD 8827 402 15 also also RB 8827 402 16 be be VB 8827 402 17 regarded regard VBN 8827 402 18 as as IN 8827 402 19 fully fully RB 8827 402 20 established establish VBN 8827 402 21 . . . 8827 403 1 For for IN 8827 403 2 it -PRON- PRP 8827 403 3 will will MD 8827 403 4 then then RB 8827 403 5 be be VB 8827 403 6 seen see VBN 8827 403 7 that that IN 8827 403 8 the the DT 8827 403 9 book book NN 8827 403 10 describes describe VBZ 8827 403 11 beforehand beforehand JJ 8827 403 12 events event NNS 8827 403 13 which which WDT 8827 403 14 took take VBD 8827 403 15 place place NN 8827 403 16 in in IN 8827 403 17 70 70 CD 8827 403 18 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 403 19 and and CC 8827 403 20 the the DT 8827 403 21 years year NNS 8827 403 22 immediately immediately RB 8827 403 23 preceding precede VBG 8827 403 24 , , , 8827 403 25 partly partly RB 8827 403 26 on on IN 8827 403 27 earth earth NN 8827 403 28 and and CC 8827 403 29 partly partly RB 8827 403 30 in in IN 8827 403 31 the the DT 8827 403 32 spiritual spiritual JJ 8827 403 33 world world NN 8827 403 34 , , , 8827 403 35 and and CC 8827 403 36 is be VBZ 8827 403 37 mainly mainly RB 8827 403 38 concerned concerned JJ 8827 403 39 with with IN 8827 403 40 the the DT 8827 403 41 downfall downfall NN 8827 403 42 of of IN 8827 403 43 the the DT 8827 403 44 earthly earthly JJ 8827 403 45 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 403 46 and and CC 8827 403 47 the the DT 8827 403 48 setting setting NN 8827 403 49 up up RP 8827 403 50 of of IN 8827 403 51 Christ Christ NNP 8827 403 52 's 's POS 8827 403 53 heavenly heavenly JJ 8827 403 54 Kingdom Kingdom NNP 8827 403 55 -- -- : 8827 403 56 the the DT 8827 403 57 new new JJ 8827 403 58 Jerusalem Jerusalem NNP 8827 403 59 . . . 8827 404 1 And and CC 8827 404 2 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 404 3 many many JJ 8827 404 4 mysterious mysterious JJ 8827 404 5 symbols symbol NNS 8827 404 6 will will MD 8827 404 7 be be VB 8827 404 8 seen see VBN 8827 404 9 to to TO 8827 404 10 have have VB 8827 404 11 been be VBN 8827 404 12 a a DT 8827 404 13 cipher cipher NN 8827 404 14 of of IN 8827 404 15 which which WDT 8827 404 16 the the DT 8827 404 17 first first JJ 8827 404 18 Christians Christians NNPS 8827 404 19 held hold VBD 8827 404 20 the the DT 8827 404 21 key key NN 8827 404 22 , , , 8827 404 23 but but CC 8827 404 24 which which WDT 8827 404 25 hid hide VBD 8827 404 26 its -PRON- PRP$ 8827 404 27 meaning meaning NN 8827 404 28 from from IN 8827 404 29 their -PRON- PRP$ 8827 404 30 enemies enemy NNS 8827 404 31 . . . 8827 405 1 Many many JJ 8827 405 2 scholars scholar NNS 8827 405 3 , , , 8827 405 4 however however RB 8827 405 5 , , , 8827 405 6 regard regard VB 8827 405 7 the the DT 8827 405 8 book book NN 8827 405 9 as as IN 8827 405 10 a a DT 8827 405 11 document document NN 8827 405 12 of of IN 8827 405 13 Nero Nero NNP 8827 405 14 's 's POS 8827 405 15 time time NN 8827 405 16 carefully carefully RB 8827 405 17 incorporated incorporate VBN 8827 405 18 in in IN 8827 405 19 one one CD 8827 405 20 written write VBN 8827 405 21 about about RB 8827 405 22 90 90 CD 8827 405 23 A.D. A.D. NNP 8827 405 24 : : : 8827 405 25 " " `` 8827 405 26 a a DT 8827 405 27 Jewish jewish JJ 8827 405 28 Apocalypse Apocalypse NNP 8827 405 29 in in IN 8827 405 30 a a DT 8827 405 31 Christian christian JJ 8827 405 32 framework framework NN 8827 405 33 ; ; : 8827 405 34 " " `` 8827 405 35 both both DT 8827 405 36 perhaps perhaps RB 8827 405 37 being be VBG 8827 405 38 by by IN 8827 405 39 the the DT 8827 405 40 same same JJ 8827 405 41 author.--EDITOR author.--editor XX 8827 405 42 . . .